Sons of God Who We Are, Why We Are Here

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 337

Sons of God

Z e n Gar cia

Sons of God

Who We Are,Why We Are Here


Sons of God
Copyright 2012 by Zen Garcia. All rights reserved.

No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system or transmitted


in any way by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopy, recording or otherwise
without the prior permission of the author except as provided by USA copyright law.
The opinions expressed by the author are not necessarily those of Tate Publishing, LLC.

Published by Tate Publishing & Enterprises, LLC


127 E. Trade Center Terrace | Mustang, Oklahoma 73064 USA
1.888.361.9473 | www.tatepublishing.com
Tate Publishing is committed to excellence in the publishing industry. The company
reflects the philosophy established by the founders, based on Psalm 68:11,
The Lord gave the word and great was the company of those who published it.
Book design copyright 2012 by Tate Publishing, LLC. All rights reserved.
Cover design by Rodrigo Adolfo
Interior design by Nathan Harmony

Published in the United States of America


ISBN: 978-1-62295-011-9
1. Religion / Christian Theology / Angelology & Demonology
2. Religion / Christian Theology / General
12.08.13
Dedication

As always first honor to the Holy Trinity (Great Mystery): YHWH


Father Creator, Yahushuah, only begotten Son, and Barbelo the
Holy Spirit, for all life and being, chance and opportunity. I lovingly
dedicate this book to those seekers of lost paradise who dedicate
self to serving Yahushuah Savior Messiah, who pick up the cross of
salvation and, displaying it proudly, wear it as a badge of honor. I
honor you for associating self to the only truth and way that leads to
everlasting life and escape from the evils of this world and the flesh.
The overcomers will be rewarded with a return to our first estate
and restoration of our original bright natured immortal status as
ministering spirits under the Morningstar administration of Christ
Yahushuah. Those not written into the Book of Life will suffer a
similar fate as the rebel angels or fallen watchers that both rebelled
against the Lord so long ago, and for their evil will be wiped from
reality as if they had never existed.
I also dedicate this book to my mother, Myong Hwa Shin Garcia,
my father, Manuel Pedro Garcia, my son, Justin James Garcia, and
his mother, Stacy Painter Wilson.I can never thank you, Lord,
enough for the blessing of incredible family. I would be among the
lost and wayward now if it werent for their unconditional love and
persistent forgiveness. I pray, Lord, that you keep them and the rest
of us under your wing of protection and guide us in the discernment
you would have us share with one another in awakening each other
to the realities of what we face here on this planet as angels trapped
in a fallen state, imprisoned on a fallen world and bound under the
influence of demonic forces we are only now beginning to compre-
hend. I pray this book awaken you to who you are and why we are
here on this planet and at this special time.
Acknowledgements

I would like to honor my friends, listeners, and viewers whom have,


over the course of many years, supported me in my work to awaken
others to the strangeness of our current life reality.
I would especially like to thank Dr. Joye Jeffries Pugh, Professor
Truth, John the Baptist, Jonathan Kleck, Kenneth Beer, Roman
White, and Alexander Bachman, among others, whose friendship
has sustained and confirmed my own discernment on so many eso-
teric aspects of scripture. Truly out of the mouths of two or three
witnesses shall the truth be established.
Table of Contents

Foreword . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 13

Introduction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 17

Timeline for Creation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 23

Yahushuah: Light of the World . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 45

Adam of Light and the Three World Ages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59

Sons of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 71

Dragon Lords . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 79

Prior Times: Mission Earth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 103

The Celestial Battle and End of the First World Age . . . . . . . . 119

Pre-Adamic Earth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 129

Adam of Paradise and the Second World Age . . . . . . . . . . . . . 143

Forbidden Fruit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 163

Prison Planet . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 179

Abandon Hope All Ye That Enter Here . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191

The Watcher Rebellion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 199


The Reality of the Rulers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223

Flying Fiery Serpents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237

Salvation, Harvest, and the Plan of Redemption . . . . . . . . . . . . 263

The Molding of Eighth-Day Dust Adam and Eve . . . . . . . . . . 279

Fallen Archons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 293

The Tree of Good and Elevation of Consciousness . . . . . . . . . . 309

The Rape of Eve . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 317


The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way,
before his works of old. I was set up from everlasting,
from the beginning, or ever the earth was. When there
were no depths, I was brought forth; when there were no
fountains abounding with water. Before the mountains
were settled, before the hills was I brought forth: While
as yet he had not made the earth, nor the fields, nor the
highest part of the dust of the world. When he prepared
the heavens, I was there: when he set a compass upon the
face of the depth: When he established the clouds above:
when he strengthened the fountains of the deep: When he
gave to the sea his decree, that the waters should not pass
his commandment: when he appointed the foundations
of the earth: Then I was by him, as one brought up with
him: and I was daily his delight, rejoicing always before
him; Rejoicing in the habitable part of his earth; and my
delights were with the sons of men.
Proverbs 8:22-31
Foreword

Back in the seventies I listened to Jack Van Impe on my record


player at the age of nine. I had recently received the Baptism of
the Holy Spirit and was overwhelmed with a hunger to learn about
our Heavenly Father and Jesus Christ (Yahushua), His son, my
King. After decades of so-called advanced Bible teaching from tra-
ditional theologians educated by the Tavistock Institute, it wasnt
until approximately thirty-seven years later I would really begin to
understand the Bibles deeper mysteries. Through a series of super-
natural coincidences, I was led to our brother Zen Garcia and have
been deeply blessed by our developing friendship and continuously
unfolding revelations.

For nothing is secret that will not be revealed, nor any-


thing hidden that will not be known and come to light.
Therefore take heed how you hear. For whoever has, to
him more will be given; and whoever does not have, even
what he seems to have will be taken from him.
Luke 8:17-18 (nkjv)

There are twenty-two books mentioned in the sixty-six-book canon


of the common Holy Bible of today that do not appear in the Bible.
Some are lost (or so they say). Some were simply rejected by an
appointed committee. If Jesus had to rebuke Satan while talking
to his own apostle Peter (Mark 16:23, get thee behind me Satan!),

13
how much more so have our post Nicean Council canon committees
been infiltrated by the works of the dark side?
As I sit here in my office writing this on October 27, 2011 (sup-
posedly the eve of the end of the Mayan long-count calendar), I am
expecting at any moment a war to break out. Never mind the omi-
nous approaching date of 11/11/11 and the pending threats of the
Hoover Dam being destroyed by the Serpent. So the serpent spewed
water out of his mouth like a flood after the woman, that he might
cause her to be carried away by the flood (Revelation 12:15, kjv).
Given the date of this writing, one might expect that the above-
mentioned war to be with the country of Iran. The real threat to
humanity is not coming from Russia or China; its coming from afar
on the wings of chariots that are carried as the wind upon the earth.
In 1611 the original King James Bible was written and assembled.
It contained a series of inspired writings from the prophet Esdras.
Since then, those books have been pillaged from our hands by the
forces of evil. Revealed in those prophecies are mysteries of our cur-
rent day. It contains warnings from one of our Heavenly Fathers
greatest prophets that have been intentionally hidden from our view.
Indeed as the prophet Esdras warned us, the dragons of Arabia come
to warone that will take place here on Earth.
2 Esdras 15:29 says, Where the nations of the dragons of Arabia
shall come out with many chariots, and the multitude of them shall
be carried as the wind upon earth, that all they which hear them may
fear and tremble.
As the author of over 350 articles published on the website www.
tribulation-now.org, over the years I have struggled intensely with
accepting all things esoteric. We all suffer from the sin of unbelief.
The devils army has not only pillaged our scripture, but it has infil-
trated our churches, ensuring that anyone searching for the truth
outside the sixty-six-book canon be labeled a heretic. If you dare
mention an Erich von Daniken book within the earshot of a fellow
brother, youre certain to hear, Thats of the devil! Not only are we

zen garcia 14
restricted to the itchy ears, milky doctrine of the tax-free, 501 c-3
bound IRS churches, we are blinded by our ignorance to the even-
tual demise and damnation of many fellow brothers and sisters
particularly those lost in the dimension of the New Age. When God
(YHWH, our Heavenly Father and Most High God) says he will
send a strong delusion (2 Thesselonians 2:11) this matter cannot be
taken lightly.
When I started writing articles for Tribulation Now, I didnt even
believe in UFOs, let alone fallen angels. To the detriment of my mar-
riage, and at the expense of hundreds of hours of intense research, I
began my quest for the truth behind this New World Order. Using
what I refer to as the Venn Diagram method of research, I created
overlapping ovals on a white board. Each oval represented an area
of necessary study. The dots had to be connected. I instinctively
knew there was a common element to the evil cabal attempting to
overthrow the world. Somehow this mystery had to include aliens.
Somehow the Bible had to explain fallen angels and UFOs. And
indeed it does.
Through a series of supernatural coincidences and a research path
laden with astonishment and tears, I frequently cried out to our
Heavenly Father, asking for understanding. While studying the hor-
rors associated with alien abductions and the hybridization of man-
kind through the intentional manipulation of the mind and human
genome, the question why kept surfacing. Along this pathway of
metaphorical broken glass, I struggled to understand who we are
as humans in the universe of extraterrestrial beings. This glorious
revelation will not only excite you about who you are in the universe
of life-forms but can save the souls of those hijacked by Lucifer and
New Age Ashtar Command minions.
I am excited about this book. God has deeply blessed us with
brother Zen Garcias ability to deep dive through endless and diverse
subject matter to uncover the deepest mysteries of our existence and
measure the efficacy of the findings against the accepted canon. This

15 sons of god
is a gift from the Holy Spirit that only the most open minded and
humble can accept with grace and revelation.
Be careful how you hear. May God bless you mightily. May you
stand blameless before the Son of Man.
Yahushua Jesus Christ the King of Kings
John Seitzinger aka John the Baptist
www.tribulation-now.org.

zen garcia 16
Introduction

Ive been asked by many readers, listeners, and viewers to provide


resources for why I believe we are the Sons of God who were once
part of the Elohim that served in the Celestial Morningstar coun-
cil of Yahweh/Yahushuahs administration prior to this incarnation
as modern-day human beings. To help establish this premise and
unravel the paradigm which, in my opinion, is the most incredibly
profound tale that one could ever imagine possible, a story which
will retrace the fall and elevation of humanity from paradise to the
earth in explaining who we truly are, why we are here, and what
this life is really all about. Hopefully, once conveyed, this book will
help one comprehend the profound nature of who we are so that
all of us can then awaken to remembrance of self that affects world
in positivity.
I believe the whole reason why the Lord aspired us to know self is
because this revelation can explain, for those whom embrace it, why
we are here as fallen angels trapped in the armor of flesh on a prison
planet overrun by devils and demons. Unless one awakens to who
you are and why you/we are here, one would not understand why the
Lord had to come into flesh to redeem us from body, strange vessel
of soul, as we live out one lifetime in the immortal journey of spirit.
Because of the controversial nature of my previous works, I
decided in 2010 to splinter this information off from the book that
I was then publishing, Lucifer: Father of Cain. I did not want this
information tainted by the focus of that book as the title alone has

17
solicited what I feel undeserved condemnation, and so held it back
for publication at a later date. I still do not feel that many people
will be able to understand the profound nature of this revelation and
that I will probably be much maligned for it, yet I have decided to go
ahead with its release due to the lateness of the hour.
Many people consider my work contentious simply because
I quote extensively from a wide variety of sources which include
the Nag Hammadi codices, Dead Sea Scrolls, apocryphal, pseude-
pigraphal, Sumerian, Babylonian, Masonic, Satanic, Luciferian,
Egyptian, Celtic, Mayan as well as Old Testament, New Testament,
and extra biblical sources. The reason I provide such extensive cita-
tion is so the reader can verify for himself or herself the sources used
in tying and piecing together the story that I will unfold here.
When it comes to truth, do not trust any mortal opinionthe
preachers, the bully pulpits, the doublespeak politicians, or the talk-
ing bobble heads on TV. We must individually do ones own research
when determining truth as far as ones worldview, for how can any-
one judge anything without having first investigated the relevancy
of its message or the profoundness of its content? Doubt everything
brought before you, believe nothing, do ones own homework, and
know truth.

A society whose citizens refuse to see and investigate the


facts, who refuse to believe that their government and
their media will routinely lie to them and fabricate a real-
ity contrary to verifiable facts, is a society that chooses and
deserves the Police State Dictatorship its going to get.
Ian Williams Goddard

Condemnation without investigation is the height of


ignorance.
Albert Einstein

zen garcia 18
During the course of this book I will bring forth many quotations
from the biblical canon, which, unless explained this way, cannot
make sense in a paradigm that unifies the totality of scripture with
what is available to us as world history, mythology, religion, and fan-
tasy. This knowledge can unify all the aspects of what would seem
to be individualized and disparate pieces of unconnected truth in
presenting a cohesive pattern, which ties together creature creation
and Creator.

When the pearl is cast down into the mud, it becomes


greatly despised, nor if it is anointed with balsam oil will it
become more precious. But it always has value in the eyes
of its owner. Compare the Sons of God: wherever they
may be, they still have value in the eyes of their Father.
Gospel of Philip

Books, like people, should not be judged based on cover alone. Its
my contention that should one be able to suspend ones belief system
and embrace the possibilities of this book that it has the potential to
help one wake up to the remembrance of who you are, why we are
here, and what this world is all about.
I realize also that probably not many will be ready for this infor-
mation and that only a few will get it and yet I believe the world is
now ripe for the release of this knowledge. My hope is that many of
you will find long sought for secrets within these pages. Knowledge
which will confirm those things that I have been stating for years in
my radio work and on the www.fallenangels.tv website.The Father
has testified in His word as to the desperate nature of the times we
would be living in at the end of days and that unless the days were
shortened there should be no flesh left. And though no man knows
the day or the hour, we are called as children of the light to recognize
the signs of the season. This teaching on the Sons of God, along with
the revelation of the three Adams and the three World Ages, is, in

19 sons of god
my opinion, essential for understanding whom Yahushuah our savior
messiah was, is, and will be. As the light of creation, the Word, and
only begotten Son of Yahweh Elohim, the Father of us all, it was
necessary for Him to come into the flesh on a DNA rescue mission
to save us as fallen angels condemned to die the death of humanity. I
will explain our condemnation, how it stemmed from the eating of the
forbidden fruit, what that fruit was, how it led to original sin, and why
we are in the fallen state of being we now find ourselves in.
Woven into the explanation is the story of why Lucifer was ban-
ished from the heavens and why he decided to rebel initially. I will also
tie into this magnificent tale such cryptic and esoteric issues as pre-
existence, incarnation, salvation, harvest, and judgment. I will sum-
marize within these pages the fullness of our Fathers plan for creation
and how His Son, as the first Adam, would come later into flesh to
defeat death and show by example that He is the author of eternal life
and way to escape all those things prophesied to occur to the Earth
which, according to the Word, will make mens hearts fail them.
I will also cover, in detail, the separate creations of the Genesis
1:26 Elohim-molded Primitive Worker, to the Holy Trinity-formed
Genesis 2:7, sixth-day spirit-endowed hermaphroditic creation of
Civilized Man, who we know as Adam of Paradise, whohaving
fallenwas transformed into flesh on the 8th day. One must make
sense of the 3 World ages and 3 creations of Adam to understand
our current world condition.
This third Adam was elevated once he and Eve lost their bright
natures, and having fallen to this prison planet, found themselves
surrounded by demons and devils bent on persecuting and oppress-
ing themselves and their offspring. Most have never heard about
the elevation of Adam and Eve once they were in a fallen state, and
yet this teaching too is vital for opening up secrets hidden within
the contents of not only the Bible but all other ancient and mostly
forgotten books of wisdom, religion, and mythology.

zen garcia 20
Over the years I have spoken about these things in many books,
and recorded many radio shows to expand upon the principles that
the Lord has led me to in discerning truth. I believe that this book is
the culmination of my plight to remember who I am in playing out
my part in the grander scheme of creation, which is life. Everything
I have learned, I have attempted to present to you in a way that is
cohesive and easily understood.
I know that many things that I expound are very contentious
indeed and that many will outright reject and probably never ever
even look into the things that I will be writing about here, yet I also
know that there are those out there that, like myself, must glean
truth through the experience of ones own introspection and imagi-
native contemplation.
It is my intent that this information only further strengthens and
confirms ones faith in our Lord Yahushuah Savior Messiah. With
that singular goal in mind, I present this interpretation on the works
of myriad apostles, prophets, historians, and traditions with hopes
that it only further verifies for you the veracity of the Old and New
Testament as books of law for a way of life. Also note that I do not
read or study books written by others about gnosis or the interpreta-
tion of it. I simply utilize my own discernment in bringing forward
the information found here. And like my other books I ask you to
believe nothing I bring forth, but to do your own homework to fur-
ther expound upon those things I have taught for years on my web-
sites and through my video/radio work.
I ask you to go forward in your own relationship with the Most
High and ask the Lord to confirm whether the things presented
here are true or not for you. I am not worthy to judge, and I certainly
am no authority in telling others what they should and should not
read or believe in. Its my opinion that, in uncovering wisdom, we
must exhaust every avenue of study in trying to put together the
puzzles of truth underlying all belief systems everywhere.
Zen Garcia, July 28, 2011

21 sons of god
Timeline for
Creation

Day None
Everything exists within and as part of the invisible Holy Trinity;
the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit are the Source for pre-existence for
all forms of creation. Yahushuah as the Word, Light, Tree of Life,
and embodiment of the Father unfolds the higher invisible realms
and angelic hierarchy, which includes us as Sons of God, part of
the Morningstar administration prior to the rebellion of Lucifer.
Contrary to belief, there never was a beginning nor will there ever
be an ending that surpasses coming judgment. The Holy Trinity as
Great Mystery has, was, is, and always will be Alpha Omega and
everything in between visible and unseen.
Jehovih said: Have I not declared Myself in the past; in My works
have I not provided thousands of years in advance? As I have shown
system in the corporeal worlds, know thou, O man, that system pre-
vaileth in the firmament (Book of Jehovih).
In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth. And the
earth was without form, and void; and darkness was upon the face of
the deep. And the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters
(Genesis 1, kjv).

23
Day One
The Son is revealed to the sons of God as light of the universe; crea-
tion becomes visible. The angels shout for joy at the revealing of the
Great Mystery. The invisible realms are unfolded in perfection and
glory forming the foundation for Sophia (Matter) to replicate as a
shadow mirror of visible physical worlds. Prior to the separation of
light and darkness, the lower angels thought themselves pre-existent
beings. Like us they were witness to Yahushuah being called forth by
the voice of Father Creator in granting dominion to His Son.

And God said, Let there be light: and there was light. And
God saw the light, that it was good: and God divided the
light from the darkness. And God called the light Day,
and the darkness he called Night. And the evening and the
morning were the first day.
Genesis 1 (kjv)

Where wast thou when I laid the foundations of the earth?


Declare, if thou hast understanding. Who hath laid the
measures thereof, if thou knowest? Or who hath stretched
the line upon it? Whereupon are the foundations thereof
fastened? Or who laid the corner stone thereof; When
the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God
shouted for joy? Or who shut up the sea with doors, when
it brake forth, as if it had issued out of the womb? When
I made the cloud the garment thereof, and thick darkness
a swaddlingband for it, And brake up for it my decreed
place, and set bars and doors, And said, Hitherto shalt
thou come, but no further: and here shall thy proud waves
be stayed?
Job 38:4-11 (kjv)

In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with
God, and the Word was God. The same was in the begin-
ning with God. All things were made by him; and without

zen garcia 24
him was not any thing made that was made. In him was
life; and the life was the light of men. And the light shi-
neth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not.
John 1 (kjv)

To the tree I gave life; to man I gave life and spirit also.
And the spirit I made was separate from the corporeal life.
Book of Jehovih

Day Two
Lucifer (cherubim) contrives envy in his heart desires to be like the
Most High, challenges the authority of Yahushuah and tempts one
third of the (Seraphim) angels to rebel. War in heaven ensues, and
Lucifer becomes Satan the adversary, accuser of the brethren, and is
banished with his angels to the five lower heavens.
Niburu (their planet of habitation) is captured as part of our
Solar System, bringing the fallen ones to this space, time, and aeon
of the universe.

And God said, Let there be a firmament in the midst of


the waters, and let it divide the waters from the waters.
And God made the firmament, and divided the waters
which were under the firmament from the waters which
were above the firmament: and it was so. And God called
the firmament Heaven. And the evening and the morning
were the second day.
Genesis 1:6-8 (kjv)

The division of the firmaments, waters, and heavens above are refer-
ence to the ancient war between the Lord of Hosts and the dragon
Tiamat as memorialized in the Enuma elish. The Lord would use
Niburu to destroy Rahab, dividing the solar system into what became
the division of the heavens into inner and outer planets. On Niburus
second orbit as the newest captured member of this solar system, it

25 sons of god
carried the still coalescing carcass of Tiamat, into what would be the
new orbital position for Earth, or Ki, establishing the conditions
necessary to harbor life. This was the pivotal moment of history for
beings that would later occupy and evolve in what would be a world
hospitable to the quick replication and foundation of what became
the story of life here on Earth.

But now, O Adam, we will make known to you, what


came over us through him, before his fall from heaven. He
gathered together his hosts, and deceived them, promising
to give them a great kingdom, a divine nature; and other
promises he made them. His hosts believed that his word
was true, so they yielded to him, and renounced the glory
of God. He then sent for usaccording to the orders in
which we wereto come under his command, and to
accept his vein promise. But we would not, and we did not
take his advice.
Then after he had fought with God, and had dealt for-
wardly with Him, he gathered together his hosts, and made
war with us. And if it had not been for Gods strength that
was with us, we could not have prevailed against him to
hurl him from heaven. But when he fell from among us,
there was great joy in heaven, because of his going down
from us.
For if he had remained in heaven, nothing, not even one
angel would have remained in it. But God in His mercy,
drove him from among us to this dark earth; for he had
become darkness itself and a worker of unrighteousness.
The First Book of Adam and Eve, 55

I have made a covenant with my chosen, I have sworn


unto David my servant, Thy seed will I establish for ever,
and build up thy throne to all generations. Selah. And the
heavens shall praise thy wonders, O Lord: thy faithful-
ness also in the congregation of the saints. For who in the
heaven can be compared unto the Lord? Who among the

zen garcia 26
sons of the mighty can be likened unto the Lord. God
is greatly to be feared in the assembly of the saints, and
to be had in reverence of all them that are about him. O
Lord God of hosts, who is a strong Lord like unto thee?
Or to thy faithfulness round about thee? Thou rulest the
raging of the sea: when the waves thereof arise, thou still-
est them. Thou hast broken Rahab in pieces, as one that
is slain; thou hast scattered thine enemies with thy strong
arm. The heavens are thine, the earth also is thine: as for
the world and the fulness thereof, thou hast founded them.
Psalms 89:3-10 (kjv)

Is there any thing whereof it may be said, See, this is new? It hath
been already of old time, which was before us (Eccl.1:10, kjv).
The previous quotations reference the prior times before the
creation of this world and modern sixth-day humanity. It immortal-
izes the destruction of Tiamat, here referenced as Rahab, and the
climactic events that led to the destruction and recreation of this
solar system as portrayed by the ancient creation stories. The Lord
even references the enmity between the two different seed-lines and
how the line of David would be the blessed line that would lead to
the birth of the Messiah.

Day Three
Father Creator allowed Niburu to be captured as part of the solar
system so that He could utilize this interloper planet to repattern
the number, arrangement, and orbits of all of the other planetary
members. Niburu would split the heavens, firmaments, or waters
into two main divisions, thus its name as the planet of the crossing.
After the destruction of Tiamat, Ki, or the new Earth, was shifted
from an orbit outside of to one inside of Mars, usurping it as the
new third planet from the sun. This event was celebrated by the
ancients as having resulted in the perfect circumstance for life to
begin multiplying rapidly on what was the recreated planet Earth.

27 sons of god
The Annunaki would target this planet in order to acquire the gold
necessary to heal a breach in the atmosphere of their planet. Way
stations were established by the fallen ones on the moon and Mars
for the transportation of gold as both had less gravitational pull,
making it possible to lift heavier loads for transport back to Niburu.

And God said, Let the waters under the heaven be gath-
ered together unto one place, and let the dry land appear:
and it was so. And God called the dry land Earth; and the
gathering together of the waters called he Seas: and God
saw that it was good.
Genesis 1 (kjv)

The pillars of heaven are stunned at His rebuke. He quiets


The sea with his power, and by his understanding He shat-
ters, Rahab, by His spirit the heavens were beautiful; His
hand forbids the fugitive snake.
Job 26:11, kjv

For the creation was not willingly subjected to vanity, but


through Him subjecting it, on hope; that also the creation
will be freed from the slavery of corruption to the freedom
and the glory of the children of God. For we know that all
the creation groans together and travails together until now.
Romans 8:20 (kjv)

Day Four
The solar system begins to resettle into new orbits and circuits.
Niburu also normalizes into a counterclockwise orbit called a shar
that, according to Sumerian calculations, is a period of 3,600 years.
As all the planets of the solar system began to synchronize with their
newly establish positions, the constellations, sun, moon, and stars
also settle into what became a cycle of movement through the twelve
houses of the zodiac, a period of 25,920 years. The Annunaki claim

zen garcia 28
that they arrived here on Earth 120 shars ago, which totals 120 x
3600 = 432,000 or the period of time outlined by both Beroussus
and the Sumerian King List as the time that the hybrid demigods
were granted kingship by their fallen angel parents to rule as vic-
ars upon the Earth. The Enuma elish cites Niburu as the planet of
crossing because its orbit dissects the ecliptic exactly where the ham-
mered bracelet or asteroid belt now is.

And God said, Let the earth bring forth grass, the herb
yielding seed, and the fruit tree yielding fruit after his
kind, whose seed is in itself, upon the earth: and it was so.
And the earth brought forth grass, and herb yielding seed
after his kind, and the tree yielding fruit, whose seed was
in itself, after his kind: and God saw that it was good. And
the evening and the morning were the third day. And God
said, Let there be lights in the firmament of the heaven to
divide the day from the night; and let them be for signs,
and for seasons, and for days, and years: And let them be
for lights in the firmament of the heaven to give light upon
the earth: and it was so. And God made two great lights;
the greater light to rule the day, and the lesser light to rule
the night: he made the stars also. And God set them in
the firmament of the heaven to give light upon the earth,
And to rule over the day and over the night, and to divide
the light from the darkness: and God saw that it was good.
And the evening and the morning were the fourth day.
Genesis 1:14-19 (kjv)

Observe ye everything that takes place in the heaven, how


they do not change their orbits, and the luminaries which
are in the heaven, how they all rise and set in order each in
its season, and transgress not against their appointed order.
The Book of Enoch 2:1

29 sons of god
Day Five
After the destruction of the First World Age and Tiamat some
457,000 to 439,000 years ago, the fallen angels arrive on the new
Earth (Ki) and establish Eridu as their first city and base of opera-
tions. Its my opinion that the Annunaki are neither gods nor
immortal, and even though they have very long lifespans, they can
be killed and die as referenced by Isaiah 14 and Ezekiel 28 on the
fall of Lucifer and the destruction of his children.
They are now holding form as flesh-and-blood spirit men and
can eat food, drink water, sleep, dream, and procreate much like
modern-day humanity. This does not detract from their abilities as
multi-dimensional reptilian dragon-like shape-shifting beings that
can possess and hold form in all variety of bodies.

But thou art cast out of thy grave like an abominable


branch, and as the raiment of those that are slain, thrust
through with a sword, that go down to the stones of the
pit; as a carcase trodden under feet. Thou shalt not be
joined with them in burial, because thou hast destroyed
thy land, and slain thy people: the seed of evildoers shall
never be renowned. Prepare slaughter for his children for
the iniquity of their fathers; that they do not rise, nor pos-
sess the land, nor fill the face of the world with cities. For
I will rise up against them, saith the Lord of hosts, and
cut off from Babylon the name, and remnant, and son, and
nephew, saith the Lord.
Isaiah 14:19-22 (kjv)

Because thou hast set thine heart as the heart of God;


Behold, therefore I will bring strangers upon thee, the
terrible of the nations: and they shall draw their swords
against the beauty of thy wisdom, and they shall defile thy
brightness. They shall bring thee down to the pit, and thou
shalt die the deaths of them that are slain in the midst of
the seas. Wilt thou yet say before him that slayeth thee,

zen garcia 30
I am God? But thou shalt be a man, and no God, in the
hand of him that slayeth thee. Thou shalt die the deaths
of the uncircumcised by the hand of strangers: for I have
spoken it, saith the Lord GOD. Thine heart was lifted up
because of thy beauty, thou hast corrupted thy wisdom by
reason of thy brightness: I will cast thee to the ground, I
will lay thee before kings, that they may behold thee. Thou
hast defiled thy sanctuaries by the multitude of thine iniq-
uities, by the iniquity of thy traffick; therefore will I bring
forth a fire from the midst of thee, it shall devour thee, and
I will bring thee to ashes upon the earth in the sight of all
them that behold thee. All they that know thee among the
people shall be astonished at thee: thou shalt be a terror,
and never shalt thou be any more.
Ezekiel 28:6-10, 17-19 (kjv)

Alalu, an exiled Niburian king, landed on the Earth prior to Enki


and another group of fifty Annunaki arriving from Niburu. They
implement a plan to establish five cities for the monumental task of
acquiring, refining, mining, and delivering gold to their own planet
for help in combating the ecological disaster they were said to have
been experiencing. According to Sumerian teachings they needed
huge quantities of gold in order for them to be able to crush it into
powder form and then suspend it into the atmosphere to refract the
suns rays. Not being particularly fond of work, they devise a plan to
create a primitive worker to serve as slave and relieve them from the
burden of labor.
Though this creature was capable of menial tasks, it was not able
to understand the secrets of heaven. According to the Chaldean
historian Berossus, it was during the early history of pre-adamic
humanity that the Annunaki engage in direct bestiality, as well as
genetic experimentation on all other animal and plant species avail-
able then on planet. It was during this time that an abundance of
uniquely hybrid monstrosities came into being.

31 sons of god
This creature was not the modern Yahweh Yahushuah-created
sixth-day spirit-filled Adam of Genesis 3. The God spoken about in
Genesis 1 and 2 is actually a plural term that represents the Elohim
or the fallen ones and their genetic intervention upon this planet
before modern humans were created.

And God said, Let the waters bring forth abundantly


the moving creature that hath life, and fowl that may fly
above the earth in the open firmament of heaven. And
God created great whales, and every living creature that
moveth, which the waters brought forth abundantly, after
their kind, and every winged fowl after his kind: and God
saw that it was good. And God blessed them, saying, Be
fruitful, and multiply, and fill the waters in the seas, and
let fowl multiply in the earth. And the evening and the
morning were the fifth day. And God said, Let the earth
bring forth the living creature after his kind, cattle, and
creeping thing, and beast of the earth after his kind:
and it was so. And God made the beast of the earth after
his kind, and cattle after their kind, and every thing that
creepeth upon the earth after his kind: and God saw that it
was good. And God said, Let us make man in our image,
after our likeness: and let them have dominion over the
fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the
cattle, and over all the earth, and over every creeping thing
that creepeth upon the earth. So God created man in his
own image, in the image of God created he him; male and
female created he them. And God blessed them, and God
said unto them, Be fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the
earth, and subdue it: and have dominion over the fish of
the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over every living
thing that moveth upon the earth. And God said, Behold,
I have given you every herb bearing seed, which is upon
the face of all the earth, and every tree, in which is the fruit
of a tree yielding seed; to you it shall be for meat. And to
every beast of the earth, and to every fowl of the air, and to

zen garcia 32
every thing that creepeth upon the earth, wherein there is
life, I have given every green herb for meat: and it was so.
And God saw every thing that he had made, and, behold,
it was very good. And the evening and the morning were
the sixth day.
Genesis 1:20-31 (kjv)

I looked over the wide heavens that I had made, and I


saw countless millions of spirits of the dead that had lived
and died on other corporeal worlds before the earth was
made. I spake in the firmament, and My voice reached
to the uttermost places. And there came in answer to the
sounds of My voice, myriads of angels from the roadway in
heaven, where the earth traveleth. I said to them, Behold!
A new world have I created; come ye and enjoy it. Yea,
ye shall learn from it how it was with other worlds in
ages past. There alighted upon the new earth millions of
angels from heaven; but many of them had never fulfilled
a corporeal life, having died in infancy, and these angels
comprehended not procreation nor corporeal life. And I
said, go and deliver Asu from darkness, for he shall also
rise in spirit to inherit my etherean worlds. And now was
the earth in the latter days of semu, and the angels could
readily take on corporeal bodies for themselves; out of the
elements of the earth clothed they themselves, by force of
their wills, with flesh and bones. By the side of the Asuans
took they on corporeal forms. And I said: Go ye forth and
partake of all that is on the earth; but partake ye not of
the tree of life, lest in that labor ye become procreators
and as if dead to the heavens whence ye came. But those
who had never learned corporeal things, being imperfect
in wisdom, comprehended not Jehovihs words, and they
dwelt with the Asuans, and were tempted, and partook
of the fruit of the tree of life; and lo and behold they saw
their own nakedness. And there was born of the first race
(Asu) a new race called man; and Jehovih took the earth
out of the travail of semu and the angels gave up their

33 sons of god
corporeal bodies. Jehovih said: Because ye have raised up
those that shall be joint heirs in heaven, ye shall tread the
earth with your feet, and walk by the sides of the new born,
being guardian angels over them, for they are of your own
flesh and kin. Fruit of your seed have I quickened with my
spirit, and man shall come forth with a birth-right to My
etherean worlds.
Book of JehovIh

Day Six: Seven Thousand Years Ago


What most dont realize is that not only were the fallen angels
already here before the creation of modern-day humanity, but pre-
adamic man was also already upon the world stage. It was this big
foot type creature that was utilized to create what the Annunaki
call the primitive worker. Whats interesting about the Sumerian
stories is that they also cite the sudden appearance of the breath
filled modern-day creation of sixth-day humanity or civilized man.
The Elohim or Annunaki were upon the Earth before the creation
and advent of the seed of Adam. The Elohim were the originators
of the initial root race and civilization. They had established a global
empire, based on trade, that extended to all parts of the world before
pre-adamic humanity had gathered in tribes. It was these beings that
were initially manipulated by the Elohim to bring forth the primitive
worker. The legends of Poseidia, Atlantis, Mu, Lemuria, and Muror
are based on the reality of this original angelic culture and civiliza-
tion.It was during the time of this kingdom, or what the Egyptians
call Zep Tepithe beginning timethat the hybrid demigods ruled
upon the Earth.In a book called Mu Revealed, ancient Mayan docu-
ments are cited, which discuss the priesthood of Atlantis specifically
a young priest named Kland as he is educated through the Temple
system. Kland discusses many things within the scope of this scroll,
giving us insight into Atlantiss legend and past. He documents war
and environmental destruction, which spanned a period of 50,000

zen garcia 34
Bc to 13,000 Bc, when the final destruction of Atlantis occurred
with the drowning of the continent. One of the major disputes of
that epoch is based on the rights and treatment of these primitive
workers. Freedoms were not extended to those creatures and many
were treated and used like economic slaves without intrinsic worth
or value. Like the Emerald Tablets of Thoth, Mu Revealed describes
some of the Annunaki as the sons of Belial or sons of darkness, as
they begin delving into magic associated to star-gates and the open-
ing of portals. It was during one of these experiments that the Lord
brought judgment and destruction upon them, sinking the lands of
Atlantis from memory and view. This destruction is described in
Jeremiah 4:23.

A wonder of wonders it is,


in the wilderness by themselves to have come about!
Indeed a wonder of wonders it is,
a new breed of Earthling on Earth has emerged,
A Civilized Man has the Earth itself brought forth,
Farming and shepherding, crafts and toolmaking he
can be taught!
So was Enlil to Enki saying.
Let us of the new breed to Anu word send!
Of the new breed word to Anu on Nibiru was beamed.
Let seeds that can be sown, let ewes that sheep become,
to Earth be sent!
So did Enki and Enlil to Anu the suggestion make.
By Civilized Man let Anunnaki and Earthlings become
satiated!
Anu the words heard, by the words he was amazed:
That by life essences one kind to another leads is not
unheard of!
to them words back he sent.
That on Earth a Civilized Man from the Adamu so
quickly appeared, that is unheard of!
Lost Book of Enki

35 sons of god
This sixth-day creation was elevated by Yahushuah as Adam of light
and would be the creature tempted to fall from paradise by Lucifer
Satan, or whom we come to know as the Sumerian Enki. He, as the
nachash of Genesis 3, would tempt Eve to eat of the forbidden fruit
once she was separated from Adam. The reason the Lord separated
them and placed them in paradise was to actually protect them from
the fallen ones. This is also why Lucifer had to sneak into paradise
guised as a serpent just to be able to tempt the Lords highest crea-
tures. He would cause them to fall from paradise having eaten of the
fruit of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, whereupon losing
their bright nature they would lose their protection in paradise and
be banished to reside with the other fallen angels on the lower earth.
After the Sabbath and day of rest, the Lord would reinstitute plans
to redeem Adam and descendents while at the same time condemn
the fallen angels for their perpetuation of evil in this world.

For this cause, therefore, have I brought the keys of the


mysteries of the kingdom of heaven; otherwise no flesh in
the world would be saved. For without mysteries no one
will enter into the Light-kingdom, be he a righteous or a
sinner. For this cause, therefore, have I brought the keys of
the mysteries into the world, that I may free the sinners
who shall have faith in me and hearken unto me, so that I
may free them from the bonds and the seals of the ons of
the rulers and bind them to the seals and the vestures and
the orders of the Light, in order that he whom I shall free
in the world from the bonds and the seals of the ons of
the rulers, may be freed in the Height from the bonds and
seals of the ons of the rulers, and in order that he whom
I shall bind in the world to the seals and the vestures and
the orders of the Light, may be bound in the Light-land to
the orders of the inheritances of the Light. For the sake of
sinners, therefore, have I torn myself asunder at this time
and have brought them the mysteries, that I may free them
from the ons of the rulers and bind them to the inherit-

zen garcia 36
ances of the Light, and not only the sinners, but also the
righteous, in order that I may give them the mysteries and
that they may be taken into the Light, for without myster-
ies they cannot be taken into the Light.
Pistis Sophia

Thus the heavens and the earth were finished, and all the
host of them. And on the seventh day God ended his work,
which he had made; and he rested on the seventh day from
all his work, which he had made. And God blessed the
seventh day, and sanctified it: because that in it he had
rested from all his work which God created and made.
Genesis 2:1-24 (kjv)

While Adam was listening to the speech of his Lord to


him, and standing upon the place of Golgotha, all the
creatures being gathered together that they might hear the
conversation of God with him, lo! a cloud of light car-
ried him and went with him to Paradise and the choirs of
Angels sang before him, the cherubim among them bless-
ing and the seraphim crying Holy! until Adam came into
Paradise. He entered it at the third hour on Friday, and the
Lord, to Him be praise! gave him the commandment, and
warned him against disobedience to it. Then the Lord, to
Him be praise! threw upon Adam a form of sleep, and he
slept a sweet sleep in Paradise. And God took a rib from
his left side, and from it He created Eve. When he awoke
and saw Eve he rejoiced over her and lived with her, and
she was in the pleasant garden of Paradise. God clothed
them with glory and splendour.
They outvied one another in the glory with which they
were clothed, and the Lord crowned them for marriage,
the Angels congratulated them, and there was joy there
such as never has been the like and never will be till the
day in which the people at the right hand shall hear the
glorious voice from the Lord. Adam and Eve remained in
Paradise for three hours Then God planted the tree of

37 sons of god
life in the middle of Paradise and it was the form of the
cross which was stretched upon it, and it was the tree of
life and salvation. Satan remained in his envy to Adam
and Eve for the favour which the Lord shewed them,
and he contrived to enter into the serpent, which was the
most beautiful of the animals, and its nature was above
the nature of the camel. He carried it till he went with it
in the air to the lower parts of Paradise. The reason for
Iblis the cursed hiding himself in the serpent was his ugli-
ness, for when he was deprived of his honour he got into
the acme of ugliness, till none of the creatures could have
borne the sight of him uncovered, and if Eve had seen him
unveiled in the serpent, when she spoke to him, she would
have run away from him, and neither cunning nor deceit
would have availed him with her; but he contrived to hide
himself in the serpent, the cunning creature, to teach the
birds with round tongues the speech of men in Greek and
such like
But the cursed Devil, when he entered the serpent,
came towards Eve, when she was alone in Paradise away
from Adam, and called her by her name. She turned to
him, and looked at her likeness behind a veil, and he talked
to her, and she talked to him, and he led her astray by his
speech, for womans nature is weak, and she trusts in every
word, and he lectured her about the forbidden tree in obe-
dience to her desire, and described to her the goodness
of its taste, and that when she should eat of it she should
become a god; and she longed for what the cursed one
made her long for, and she would not hear from the Lord,
may His names be sanctified! what He had commanded
Adam about the tree.
She hastened eagerly towards it, and seized some of
its fruit in her mouth. Then she called Adam, and he has-
tened to her, and she gave him of the fruit, telling him
that if he ate of it he would become a god. He listened to
her advice because he should become a god as she said.
When he and she ate the deadly fruit they were bereft of

zen garcia 38
their glory, and their splendour was taken from them, and
they were stripped of the light with which they had been
clothed. When they looked at themselves, they were naked
of the grace which they had worn, and their shame was
manifest to them; they made to themselves aprons of fig-
leaves, and covered themselves therewith, and they were in
great sadness for three hours.
They did not manage to continue in the grace and the
power with which the Lord had endued them before their
rebellion for three hours, till it was taken from them and
they were made to slip and fall down at the time of sun-
set on that day, and they received the sentence of God in
punishment. After the clothing of fig-leaves they put on
clothing of skins, and that is the skin of which our bodies
are made, being of the family of man, and it is a cloth-
ing of pain. The entrance of Adam into Paradise was at
the third hour. He and Eve passed through great power
in three hours, they were naked for three hours, and in the
ninth hour they went out from Paradise, unwillingly, with
much grief, great weeping, mourning and sighing.
KITAB AL-MAGALL

The reason I cite this passage from the Books of Rolls is because it is
one of those rare passages that actually describes sixty-day Adams ini-
tial creation as occurring between the physical Earth and the atmos-
phere beneath paradise. Created in sight of the Annunaki before
being taken up into paradise, where he was placed by the Creator in
a protective type space or enclosure called the garden of the Lord,
Adam was crowned King and given dominion of paradise on the same
day of his creation. Much like Lucifers refusal to bow before our Lord
before the war in heaven, Satan here refuses to bow before sixth-day
Adam, Adam of paradise. Jealous of his appointment, creation, and
dominion, Satan decides to tempt the innocence of Adam and Eve
after the Lord formed her from and of Adam. This text shows that
before the temptation, Adam and Eve are bright natured, angelic type

39 sons of god
beings not yet transformed to flesh, and that eating of the fruit from
the Tree of the Knowledge of Good and Evil resulted in their fall from
grace and transformation into flesh form, whereby all the prophecies
of Genesis 3 would then be fulfilled.

Now the serpent was more subtle than any beast of the
field which the Lord God had made. And he said unto
the woman, Yea, hath God said, Ye shall not eat of every
tree of the garden? And the woman said unto the serpent,
We may eat of the fruit of the trees of the garden: But of
the fruit of the tree which is in the midst of the garden,
God hath said, Ye shall not eat of it, neither shall ye touch
it, lest ye die. And the serpent said unto the woman, Ye
shall not surely die:
For God doth know that in the day ye eat thereof, then
your eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods, know-
ing good and evil. And when the woman saw that the
tree was good for food, and that it was pleasant to the eyes,
and a tree to be desired to make one wise, she took of the
fruit thereof, and did eat, and gave also unto her husband
with her; and he did eat. And the eyes of them both were
opened, and they knew that they were naked; and they
sewed fig leaves together, and made themselves aprons.
And they heard the voice of the Lord God walking in the
garden in the cool of the day: and Adam and his wife hid
themselves from the presence of the Lord God amongst
the trees of the garden. And the Lord God called unto
Adam, and said unto him, Where art thou? And he said,
I heard thy voice in the garden, and I was afraid, because I
was naked; and I hid myself. And he said, Who told thee
that thou wast naked? Hast thou eaten of the tree, whereof
I commanded thee that thou shouldest not eat? And the
man said, The woman whom thou gavest to be with me,
she gave me of the tree, and I did eat.
And the Lord God said unto the woman, What is this
that thou hast done? And the woman said, The serpent
beguiled me, and I did eat. And the Lord God said unto

zen garcia 40
the serpent, Because thou hast done this, thou art cursed
above all cattle, and above every beast of the field; upon thy
belly shalt thou go, and dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy
life: And I will put enmity between thee and the woman,
and between thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head,
and thou shalt bruise his heel. Unto the woman he said, I
will greatly multiply thy sorrow and thy conception; in sor-
row thou shalt bring forth children; and thy desire shall be
to thy husband, and he shall rule over thee.
And unto Adam he said, Because thou hast hearkened
unto the voice of thy wife, and hast eaten of the tree, of
which I commanded thee, saying, Thou shalt not eat of
it: cursed is the ground for thy sake; in sorrow shalt thou
eat of it all the days of thy life; Thorns also and thistles
shall it bring forth to thee; and thou shalt eat the herb of
the field; In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread, till
thou return unto the ground; for out of it wast thou taken:
for dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return.
And Adam called his wifes name Eve; because she was
the mother of all living. Unto Adam also and to his wife
did the Lord God make coats of skins, and clothed them.
And the Lord God said, Behold, the man is become as
one of us, to know good and evil: and now, lest he put forth
his hand, and take also of the tree of life, and eat, and live
for ever: Therefore the Lord God sent him forth from the
garden of Eden, to till the ground from whence he was
taken. So he drove out the man; and he placed at the east
of the garden of Eden Cherubims, and a flaming sword
which turned every way, to keep the way of the tree of life.
Genesis 3:1-24 (kjv)

Day Seven
Rest and sabbath are appointed the Lords holy day and signify com-
pletion of the higher and lower orders. In this day the Lord has all
of the angels and creatures worship Him in honored remembrance

41 sons of god
as a token of Thanksgiving for their/our life and being. Saboath,
or Sabbath, is sanctified as the holiest day of the week. The Lord
would use this day to celebrate His unfolding creation, but because
of the rebellion of Lucifer and fall of Adam and Eve, He would
institute a plan for judgment, the redeeming of humanity through
Yahushuah the Word and the condemnation of the fallen angels.
His Son would enter flesh and defeat death, extending grace and
salvation to those that believe on Him and in Him. The recreation
of Adam and Eve into flesh bodies happens on the eighth day and is
described in the Nag Hammadi codices as the elevation of the third
creation of eighth-day dust Adam and Eve.

Day Eight
Adam and Eve are re-created into bodies of flesh and find them-
selves living on the wilderness of the earth in a place called the Cave
of Treasures. Having lost their bright nature they are transformed
into flesh bodies which adhere to the laws of nature and physical
rules of this third-dimensional universe. In this form they would
fulfill all of the prophecies of Genesis 3 in that they would bring
children into the world, have to work to feed them, and would even-
tually die.
The second world age would also be dominated by the enmity
between the seed of the woman and the seed of the serpent. This
enmity would begin with Eve as the mother of all living. She would
be the womb through which her two blood lines, as well as peo-
ples, would come into being; Satans seed began with the birth of
Cain and Adams seed with Abel, who would be replaced with Seth
because Cain would murder his brother. The Word Himself would
end this war, being prophesized that He would be sacrificed on the
cross where David had buried the skull of Goliath. When Yahushuah
was sacrificed on the cross on the hill of Golgotha (which means
Goliath of Gath), he actually fulfilled the prophecy of Genesis 3:15,
And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between

zen garcia 42
thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise
his heel. Christ, as the seed of the woman, wason the day of His
crucifixion crushing the skull of Goliath, whom as a hybrid giant
was of the seed of the serpent, nipping at the heel of the Lord.

Time no longer slept on the bosom of God, for now there


was change where before all had been unchanging, and
change is time. Now within the Universal Womb was heat,
substance and life, and encompassing it was the Word
which is the Law.
Kolbrin Bible

43 sons of god
Yahushuah: Light
of the World

Yahushuah, as the Son of Yahweh, would incarnate into the flesh,


defeat death, and then by example show to the world what eternal
life was and what salvation would mean for those that follow Him.
Many are familiar with this aspect of His story and how He was the
fulfillment of many centuries of prophecy predicting His incarna-
tion into flesh exactly 5,500 years after the fall of humanity and
beginning of what would be the Second World Age of flesh, and yet
not much else is known about Yahushuahs role in the creation prior
to entrance into flesh.
I will cover this little known story while also expounding on
the Three World Ages, what each reflect, and why each came into
being. Lucifer, since his banishment, has sought to corrupt, hide,
and alter those doctrines that teach about the promised salvation
that Yahushuah would and did bring to world. Most have never
heard of the Three World Ages or how they parallel the three crea-
tions of Adam or what role Yahushuah played prior to incarnation
as God manifest in flesh. Most have never heard of Yahushuah
being the glory originally called forth by the voice of Yahweh in the
moment when light was separated from darkness, imperishability
from perishability. I will attempt to elucidate this hidden aspect of
our Saviors story so that you, as reader, can understand who our

45
Lord was and is in ruling creation. The concept I am about to pre-
sent is not well known and little understood, yet I consider it vital
to piecing together the tale of why Lucifer was banished from the
upper heavens and when.
The opening passage from the book of John, though cryptic in
its wording, associates Yahushuah as being one with the Father.
He is the verbal expression and physical embodiment of the Most
High, and as the Word, He was the One who brought all things into
being. This passage also verifies that it was the Son as light, who was
given dominion to create and manifest all worlds. The reason that
Yahushuah is called the Word is because the Father gave to Him
the power to bring forth in instant manifestation anything spoken
into being. It is said that He sang the universe into vibration by the
power, authority of His voice, and focused intent. Its important to
understand that the Son is the physical embodiment of the hidden
Father and that they together are one.

In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with
God, and the Word was God. The same was in the begin-
ning with God. All things were made by him; and without
him was not any thing made that was made. In him was
life; and the life was the light of men. And the light shi-
neth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not.
John 1:15 (kjv)

An interesting account from the Kolbrin Bible like John 1 also


describes authority being given to the Word, or Son of God, and
how He as the spiritual embodiment of the Father utilized this
power to create all that is visible from the invisible. And even though
the Kolbrin Bible is written from the perspective of the Egyptian
and Celtic priesthoods that deny Yahushuah as the Son of God,
there is still much truth within it for those that have the eyes to see,
ears to hear, and mind to understand.

zen garcia 46
There are no true beginnings on Earth, for here all is
effect, the ultimate cause being elsewhere. For who among
men can say which came first, the seed or the plant? Yet
in truth it is neither, for something neither seed nor plant
preceded both, and that thing was also preceded by some-
thing else. Always there are ancestors back to the begin-
ning, and back beyond to there is only God. This, then,
is how these things were told in The Great Book of The
Sons of Fire.
The name which is uttered cannot be that of this Great
Being who, remaining nameless, is the beginning and the
end, beyond time, beyond the reach of mortals, and we in
our simplicity call it God. He who preceded all existed
alone in His strange abode of uncreated light, which
remains ever unextinguishable, and no understandable eye
can ever behold it. The pulsating draughts of the eternal
life light in His keeping were not yet loosed. He knew
Himself alone, He was uncontrasted, unable to manifest
in nothingness, for all within His Being was unexpressed
potential.
The Great Circles of Eternity were yet to be spun out,
to be thrown forth as the endless ages of existence in sub-
stance. They were to begin with God and return to Him
completed in infinite variety and expression. Earth was not
yet in existence, there were no winds with the sky above
them; high mountains were not raised, nor was the great
river in its place. All was formless, without movement,
calm, silent, void and dark. No name had been named and
no destinies foreshadowed.
Eternal rest is intolerable, and unmanifested potential
is frustration. Into the solitude of timelessness can Divine
Loneliness and from this arose the desire to create, that
He might know and express Himself, and this generated
the Love of God. He took thought and brought into being
within Himself the Universal Womb of Creation contain-
ing the everlasting essence of slumbering spirit.

47 sons of god
The essence was quickened by a ripple from the mind
of God and a creative thought was projected. This gener-
ated power which produced light, and this formed a sub-
stance like unto a mist of invisible dust. It divided into
two forms of energy through being impregnated with The
Spirit of God and, quickening the chaos of the void within
the Universal Womb, became spun out into whirlpools of
substance. From this activity, as sparks from a fire, came an
infinite variety of spirit minds, each having creative powers
within itself.
The activating word was spoken, its echoes vibrate
still, and there was a stirring movement which caused
instability. A command was given and this became the
Everlasting Law. Henceforth, activity was controlled in
harmonious rhythm and the initial inertia was overcome.
The Law divided the materializing chaos from God and
then established the boundaries of the Eternal Spheres.
Time no longer slept on the bosom of God, for now
there was change where before all had been unchanging,
and change is time. Now within the Universal Womb
was heat, substance and life, and encompassing it was the
Word which is the Law.
The command was given, Let the smallest of things
form the greatest and that which lives but a flash form
everlastingness. Thus the universe came into being as a
condensation of Gods thought, and as it did so it obscured
Him from all enclosed within His solidifying creation.
Henceforth, God was hidden, for He has always remained
dimly reflected in His creation. He became veiled from
all that came forth from Him. Creation does not explain
itself, under the Law it cannot do so, its secrets have to be
unraveled by the created.
All things are by nature finite, they have a beginning, a
middle and an end. An unaccomplishable purpose would
be eternal frustration and therefore, the universe being
created purposefully it must have an objective. If it ended
without anything else following, then the God existing

zen garcia 48
must slumber indifferent to its activities. But He has made
it a living work of greatness operating under the change-
less Law.
The creating word had been spoken, now there was
another command and the power going forth smote the sun
so its face was lit, and it shone with a great radiance pour-
ing warmth and light upon its sister Earth. Henceforth she
would live within the protection of her brothers household,
rejoicing in his benevolence and strength.
Kolbrin Bible

And the city had no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine
in it: for the glory of God did lighten it, and the Lamb is the light
thereof (Revelation 22:10-23).
The Nag Hammadi codices also confirm our Lord as the light
of the universe that was called forth that brought the creation into
visibility. Yahushuah is He that jewels creation with brightness,
luster, and gloss, making objects visible to the naked eye. Without
Him nothing could be seen, and much would not be understood
as much is revealed through the light of day. Most do not associ-
ate Him as having a connection with the light as most have never
studied the scriptures, which alludes to this veiled possibility. Take,
for instance, this quote from a book called the Book of the Bee,
a 12th century text written by a Syrian bishop named Solomon
(Shelmn). Solomons intent was to expound upon the full history
of the Christian Dispensation according to the Nestorians, which
led to the formation of the Church of the East. This text provides
commentary and insight into what the early church elders thought
of specific interpretation of the word and provides interesting intro-
spection into the accepted belief systems of prior church elders.

When the holy angels were created on the evening of the


first day, without voice, they understood not their creation,
but thought within themselves that they were self-existent
beings and not made. On the morning of the first day

49 sons of god
God said in an audible and commanding voice, Let there
be light, and immediately the effused light was created.
When the angels saw the creation of light, they knew of a
certainty that He who had made light had created them.
And they shouted with a loud voice, and praised Him,
and marvelled at His creation of light, as the blessed teacher
saith, When the Creator made that light, the angels mar-
velled thereat, etc.; and as it is said in Job, When I created
the morning star, all my angels praised me.
The Book of Bee, 6

The effused light referred to here is the unveiling of Yahushuah


Savior Messiah as the light of the universe. The moment all things
became visible is the same moment when Yahweh had given domin-
ion to His Son and the same moment when the angels, who were
witness to the light being given dominion over the universe, became
aware that He who called forth the light as the only begotten of
the invisible Father, was He that was and is the Creator, Father of
all. The passage from the Book of the Bee is similar in reference and
esoteric concept to many of extra-biblical works associated with
obscure collections of unconnected texts which also make mention
of this seemingly arcane possibility.

And his will became a deed and it appeared with the mind;
and the light glorified it. And the word followed the will. For
because of the word, Christ the divine Autogenes created
everything. And the eternal life <and> his will and the mind
and the foreknowledge attended and glorified the invisible
Spirit and Barbelo, for whose sake they had come into being.
And the holy Spirit completed the divine Autogenes, his son,
together with Barbelo, that he may attend the mighty and
invisible, virginal Spirit as the divine Autogenes, the Christ
whom he had honored with a mighty voice.
He came forth through the forethought. And the invis-
ible, virginal Spirit placed the divine Autogenes of truth
over everything. And he subjected to him every authority,

zen garcia 50
and the truth which is in him, that he may know the All
which had been called with a name exalted above every
name. For that name will be mentioned to those who are
worthy of it. For from the light, which is the Christ, and
the indestructibility, through the gift of the Spirit the four
lights (appeared) from the divine Autogenes.
The Sophia of Jesus Christ

Comprehending that Yahushuah was and is the light which made all
things visible as called forth by the authoritative voice of Yahweh is
essential for understanding the next part of the story, as associated
to the war in heaven, and what lead to the banishment of Lucifer
and one third of the angels of Yahwehfrom what were then the
upper heavens.

It is he alone who came to be, that is, the Christ. And, as


for me, I anointed him as the glory of the Invisible Spirit,
with goodness. Now the Three, I established alone in eter-
nal glory over the Aeons in the Living Water, that is, the
glory that surrounds him who first came forth to the Light
of those exalted Aeons, and it is in glorious Light that he
firmly perseveres. And he stood in his own Light that sur-
rounds him, that is, the Eye of the Light that gloriously
shines on me.
Trimorphic Protennoia

Then the Son who is perfect in every respect that is,


the Word who originated through that Voice; who pro-
ceeded from the height; who has within him the Name;
who is a Light he revealed the everlasting things, and
all the unknowns were known. And those things difficult
to interpret and secret, he revealed. And as for those who
dwell in Silence with the First Thought, he preached to
them. And he revealed himself to those who dwell in dark-
ness, and he showed himself to those who dwell in the
abyss, and to those who dwell in the hidden treasuries, he

51 sons of god
told ineffable mysteries, and he taught unrepeatable doc-
trines to all those who became Sons of the Light.
Trimorphic Protennoia

In witnessing Yahweh call forth the Son, the Father had hoped
that all of the angels would know that it was to His Son Yahushuah
Savior Messiah, the light of the universe, that He had given domin-
ion over all things and that they should praise Him as the Exalted
One and only begotten of the Creator. We must remember that the
plan of glory that is salvation has been carefully prepared for and laid
out according to the will of the Father even before the foundations
of this world. This plan has been known to Him since even before
He brought all things into being through His Son, the light of the
universe. The plan of salvation would serve as reward for those who
choose to love and serve Him; it would also serve as a condemnation
for the archonsfallen angelsand humans who would war against
the seed of Adam. The loss of our bright natures and fall into the
flesh would be redeemed by and through the blood of our Creator,
who coming into the flesh would become Savior for all those seeking
to escape this world.

The Saviour answered and said unto Mary: Amen, I say


unto you: All which is appointed unto every one through
the Fate, whether all good or all sins,in a word, all which
is appointed them, cometh unto them. For this cause,
therefore, have I brought the keys of the mysteries of the
kingdom of heaven; otherwise no flesh in the world would
be saved. For without mysteries no one will enter into the
Light-kingdom, be he a righteous or a sinner.
For this cause, therefore, have I brought the keys of the
mysteries into the world, that I may free the sinners who
shall have faith in me and hearken unto me, so that I may
free them from the bonds and the seals of the ons of the
rulers and bind them to the seals and the vestures and the
orders of the Light, in order that he whom I shall free in

zen garcia 52
the world from the bonds and the seals of the ons of the
rulers, may be freed in the Height from the bonds and
seals of the ons of the rulers, and in order that he whom
I shall bind in the world to the seals and the vestures and
the orders of the Light, may be bound in the Light-land to
the orders of the inheritances of the Light. For the sake of
sinners, therefore, have I torn myself asunder at this time
and have brought them the mysteries, that I may free them
from the ons of the rulers and bind them to the inherit-
ances of the Light, and not only the sinners, but also the
righteous, in order that I may give them the mysteries and
that they may be taken into the Light, for without myster-
ies they cannot be taken into the Light.
For this cause, therefore, I have not hidden it, but I
have cried it aloud clearly. And I have not separated the
sinners, but I have cried it aloud and said it unto all men,
unto sinners and righteous, saying: Seek that ye may find,
knock that it may be opened unto you; for every one who
seeketh in truth, will find, and who knocketh, to him it
will be opened. For I have said unto all men: They are
to seek the mysteries of the Light-kingdom which shall
purify them and make them refined and lead them into
the Light.
Pistis Sophia

The most amazing and awesome story about creation is that the
Creator would become human in order to save the creature into which
He breathed the spirit of life. His coming into the flesh would also
trump the powers of the lower order, death, flesh, and mortality. It
would be His power that would shame the rulers of darkness and
the principalities who thought they could thwart salvation and judg-
ment by preventing the birth of the Messiah and the redemption of
Adams seed. Our Lord, in His grace and in His mercy, would suffer
with Adam and the rest of us, the limitations and condemnation of
incarnation into flesh. In this form, we as well as He would experience
the entire spectrum of pain, pleasure, and the duality of good and evil.

53 sons of god
Once one studies all the worlds mythologies, traditions, religions,
belief systems, and forgotten lore, one finds that all of them reflect
the same story and, even though names change from culture to cul-
ture, its the same cast of characters woven throughout all mytholo-
gies and religion. When Yahushuah separated darkness from light
and the visible world from the invisible, the angels were arranged
according to class and distinction into a higher and lower order. The
invisible Holy Elohim would serve the Morningstar administration
of the Trinity in administering to creation and humanity while the
lower order would serve under Lucifer as a fallen cherub.
The reason the Father allowed all of the angels to witness His cre-
ating all things through the Son, the Word, was so that they would
know and understand their place within the kingdom of Yahweh,
the I AM THAT I AM, and Alpha Omega. The Father had hoped
to utilize the angels as standard bearers, witnesses to the human
creatures He would bring forth later in likeness and image to inhabit
the recreated lower world. Because humanity had not witnessed the
Lord unfolding all things, humans would exceedingly stray from the
commandments and knowledge of our Creator. As such it would
be and is the duty of the higher angels to work with humanity to
help us realize our place within the creation and to whom we should
give praise and homage to the Creator, Most High, and Father of
us all. We are sons of God, only in a fallen state, having been forced
to drink of the cup of forgetfulness when incarnating into the flesh.
I have said, Ye are gods; and all of you are children of the most
High. But ye shall die like men, and fall like one of the princes
(Psalm 82:6-7, kjv).

With each and every one of us is an angel of this group


called the guardian angelwho directs man from his con-
ception until the general resurrection. The number of each
one of these classes of angels is equal to the number of
all mankind from Adam to the resurrection. Hence it is
handed down that the number of people who are going

zen garcia 54
to enter the world is equal to the number of all the heav-
enly hosts; but some say that the number is equal to that
of one of the classes only, that they may fill the place of
those of them who have fallen through transgressing the
law; because the demons fell from three classes (of angels),
from each class a third part.
If then it is an acknowledged fact that there are three
orders of angels, and in each order there are three classes,
and in every class a number equivalent to that of all man-
kind, what is the total number of the angels? Some say that
when the angels were created, and were arranged in six
divisionsCherubim, Seraphim, Thrones, Principalities,
Archangels, and Angelsthe three lower divisions reflected
(saying), What is the reason that these are set above, and
we below? for they have not previously done anything more
than we, neither do we fall short of them. On account of this
reflection as a cause, according to the custom of the (divine)
government, Justice took from both sides, and established
three other middle classes of angelsLords, Powers, and
Rulersthat the upper might not be (unduly) exalted, nor
the lower think themselves wronged.
The Book of Bee, 1

Once the spirits of the First World Age were separated into pow-
ers, principalities, and the rulers of light and darkness, confrontation
would soon ensue as Lucifer and the rebel angels would attempt to
usurp the throne of Yahweh and dominion of the Son.

For on the first day He created the heavens which are


above and the earth and the waters and all the spirits
which serve before him the angels of the presence, and the
angels of sanctification, and the angels [of the spirit of fire
and the angels] of the spirit of the winds, and the angels
of the spirit of the clouds, and of darkness, and of snow
and of hail and of hoar frost, and the angels of the voices
and of the thunder and of the lightning, and the angels of

55 sons of god
the spirits of cold and of heat, and of winter and of spring
and of autumn and of summer and of all the spirits of his
creatures which are in the heavens and on the earth.
The Book of Jubilees, 2

The angels that were witness to Yahushuah, being called forth as


the light of the universe, were meant to witness how the Trinity
together brought the creation into being. They were supposed to be
the perfect ministering spirits to what would be the coming crea-
tion and elevation of modern humanitya creature not blessed to
behold how all things were manifested. The angels were tasked with
reminding us as the Most Highs beloved creatures who the Trinity
is and was in lording over the universe.
Yet rather than submit to serve, some angels rebelled against
their positions, desiring elevated status. Lucifer arrogantly refused to
subject himself to the authority of Yahushuah and imagined exalt-
ing himself above the throne of Yahweh. For entertaining such a
thought, he was cast out of heaven on the second day of creation
along with those angels that aligned themselves in allegiance to his
transgression. The Lord allowed the fallen ones chance for self-rule
and though many civilized cultures accepted them openly as gods or
benevolent angels; the fallen ones corrupted and lead astray those
cultures that followed their advice, often demanding of them blood
or victim sacrifice.

And he made a plan with his powers. He sent his angels


to the daughters of men, that they might take some of them
for themselves and raise offspring for their enjoyment. And at
first they did not succeed. When they had no success, they
gathered together again and they made a plan together.
They created a counterfeit spirit, who resembles the Spirit
who had descended, so as to pollute the souls through it.
And the angels changed themselves in their likeness into the
likeness of their mates (the daughters of men), filling them with
the spirit of darkness, which they 25 had mixed for them, and

zen garcia 56
with evil. They brought gold and silver and a gift and copper
and iron and metal and all kinds of things. And they steered the
people who had followed them into great troubles, by leading
them astray with many deceptions. They (the people) became
old without having enjoyment. They died, not having found
truth and without knowing the God of truth. And thus the
whole creation became enslaved forever, from the foundation of
the world until now. And they took women and begot children
out of the darkness according to the likeness of their spirit. And
they closed their hearts, and they hardened themselves through
the hardness of the counterfeit spirit until now.
The Apocryphon of John

Now the first Adam, (Adam) of Light, is spirit-endowed


and appeared on the first day. The second Adam is soul-
endowed and appeared on the sixth day, which is called
Aphrodite. The third Adam is a creature of the earth, that
is, the man of the law, and he appeared on the eighth day
[] the tranquility of poverty, which is called The Day of
the Sun (Sunday). And the progeny of the earthly Adam
became numerous and was completed, and produced
within itself every kind of scientific information of the
soul-endowed Adam. But all were in ignorance.
On the Origin of the World

57 sons of god
Adam of Light
and the Three
World Ages

This passage is key for unlocking the three world ages teaching as
well as for understanding the various creations of Adam and how,
why, and when each one came into being. The accompanying quote
is what led me to understand that what was being described as the
garden tale in the non-canonical sources was actually a different
account for a different creation of Adam than what is talked about as
the fall in the Old Testament Genesis 3. In fact the Genesis 3 Adam
is a whole different being from the Genesis 2 creature molded by the
Elohim prior to humanitys recreation on the eighth day as cited in
the Nag Hammadi codices. It took me a long time to discern it this
way, so please bear with me as I try to explain this teaching so that
others can understand it without having to pour years of research
into all of these seemingly unconnected esoteric passages.
I emphasize this quote from On the Origin of the World as it clari-
fies that there are various creation verses and garden teachings asso-
ciated to each world age. It is important to understand that we are
sixth-day modern humanity made in the image of our Lord, filled
with the Holy Spirit, and that it is Yahushuah within us that is the
temple that we must rebuild to be born again. He is the eternal

59
part of us that surpasses death, inheriting the Fathers promise of
everlasting life and salvation from wrath. He who created humanity
on day six is the part of us that is Adam of light, Yahushuah, within
all things.
This sixth day Adam was separated from the fallen angels, pro-
tected, and placed in Paradise, the garden of the Lord located at the
third heaven. This Adam was given assignment to tend the garden
before Eve, his wife, was split off from him to bring both male and
female genders into being. This Eve is the one that was seduced by
Sammael, Satan, as the serpent in Paradise. This beguiling is what
lead to the loss of their bright natures and fall from grace. In this
chapter I will attempt to elucidate the Three World Ages and their
association to this cryptic passage.
The Three World Ages parallel the three creations of Adam,
and thus it is in my opinion essential to understand this quote to
understand how each age fits in with those creations of Adam. This
quote is essential to unlocking and understanding how the creation
of Adam of Light revealed on the first day, a soul-endowed Adam
revealed on the sixth day, and a flesh Adam revealed on the eighth
day parallel the three world ages teaching. The first Adam, Adam of
light (Yahushuah), banished Lucifer and his angels from the heav-
ens, the central theme for the First World Age. The second creation
of Adam, Adam of Paradise, resulted in the separation of hermaph-
roditic angelic male and female natures, the creation of woman, loss
of immortality, and fall from paradisiacal grace.
The eating of the fruit of the knowledge of good and evil, as
promised by the Lord, led to incarnation in flesh on the eighth day
where they would fulfill those prophecies as outlined by Genesis 3
and eventually succumb to death that the Lord said would over-
come them. The forbidden fruit symbolically veiled incarnation, the
blossoming of sexuality, impregnation of Eve by the archons once
transformed into flesh bodies, and humanitys first awareness of
their genitalia.

zen garcia 60
Unto the woman he said, I will greatly multiply thy sorrow and
thy conception; in sorrow thou shalt bring forth children; and thy
desire shall be to thy husband, and he shall rule over thee (Genesis
3:16, kjv).
The entrance into flesh and loss of their light vesture resulted
in humanitys collective entrance into the Second World Age and
7,000 years of duality in which we, as sons of God, would be given
free will to incarnate into the flesh, whereby we would be tested in
life to learn through the knowledge of good and evil what exist-
ence would be like separate from God. The third creation of Adam,
Adam of the Dust, came into being as a result of sixth day Adam
and Eves loss of immortality, or what some scriptures term as their
light vesture.
The third creation of Adam occurred when both were trans-
formed from immortal, angelic natures into physical flesh bodies
on the eighth day, preparing the way for incarnation upon the lower
physical Earth, where Lucifer and the rebel angels had already been
banished. The Three World Ages reflect the transformation of con-
sciousness from original spiritual innocence and immortality (First
World Age) to the fall into flesh (Second World Age) and back to
what would be a return to innocence and immortality (Third World
Age.) My hope in this chapter is to familiarize the reader with what
the Three World Ages are, how they relate to the loss of paradise,
and how they explain our current banishment to the world in which
we now reside.
Understanding this concept will help one to understand incarna-
tion, why it is we live one flesh lifeeven though we have memory
and consciousness going back to our spiritual beginningsand why
it seems we have memories of events seemingly connected to a con-
scious existence prior to the one we live out in flesh. This teaching
will help one to understand what Yahushuah speaks about in the
Pistis Sophia when He cites how He chose the souls of the apostles
for birth in an hour and time specific to fulfill their mission. The

61 sons of god
election of certain souls for specific roles in their flesh incarnations
is also discussed with this Three World Age teaching. This concept
also pertains to the later return of Enoch and Elijah as the End of
Days witnesses of Revelation.

Rejoice then and exult and rejoice more and more greatly,
for to you it is given that I speak first with you from the
beginning of the Truth to its completion. For this cause
have I chosen you verily from the beginning through the
First Mystery. Rejoice then and exult, for when I set out for
the world, I brought from the beginning with me twelve
powers, as I have told you from the beginning, which I
have taken from the twelve saviours of the Treasury of the
Light, according to the command of the First Mystery.
These then I cast into the womb of your mothers, when I
came into the world, that is those which are in your bodies
to-day. For these powers have been given unto you before
the whole world, because ye are they who will save the
whole world, and that ye may be able to endure the threat
of the rulers of the world and the pains of the world and
its dangers and all its persecutions, which the rulers of the
height will bring upon you.
For many times have I said unto you that I have
brought the power in you out of the twelve saviours who
are in the Treasury of the Light. For which cause I have
said unto you indeed from the beginning that ye are not
of the world. I also am not of it. For all men who are in
the world have gotten their souls out of [the power of ] the
rulers of the ons. But the power which is in you is from
me; your souls belong to the height. I have brought twelve
powers of the twelve saviours of the Treasury of the Light,
taking them out of the portion of my power which I did
first receive.
And when I had set forth for the world, I came into
the midst of the rulers of the sphere and had the form of
Gabriel the angel of the ons; and the rulers of the ons
did not know me, but they thought that I was the angel

zen garcia 62
Gabriel. It came to pass then, when I had come into the
midst of the rulers of the ons, that I looked down on the
world of mankind, by command of the First Mystery.
I found Elizabeth, the mother of John the Baptizer,
before she had conceived him, and I sowed into her a
power which I had received from the little Iao, the Good,
who is in the Midst, that he might be able to make proc-
lamation before me and make ready my way, and baptize
with the water of the forgiveness of sins. That power then
is in the body of John.
Moreover in place of the soul of the ruler which he was
appointed to receive, I found the soul of the prophet Elias
in the ons of the sphere; and I took him thence, and took
his soul and brought it to the Virgin of Light, and she
gave it over to her receivers; they brought it to the sphere
of the rulers and cast it into the womb of Elizabeth. So the
power of the little Iao, who is in the Midst, and the soul of
the prophet Elias, they were bound into the body of John
the Baptizer.
For this cause then were ye in doubt aforetime, I when
I said unto you: John said: I am not the Christ, and ye said
unto me: It standeth written in the scripture: When the
Christ shall come, Elias cometh before him and maketh
ready his way. But when ye said this unto me, I said unto
you: Elias verily is come and hath made ready all things, as
it standeth written, and they have done unto him as they
would. And when I knew that ye had not understood that I
had discoursed with you concerning the soul of Elias which
is bound into John the Baptizer, I answered you in the dis-
course in openness face to face: If ye like to accept John the
Baptizer: he is Elias, of whom I have said that he will come.
Pistis Sophia, 7

It is important to understand that, with the concept of the Three


World Ages, I do not speak about reincarnation in the sense that
one is born over and over through time and many lives to evolve to
what some refer to as Christ consciousness. When I speak about

63 sons of god
incarnation I am referring to the prior lives we lived as First World
Age spiritual angelic hermaphroditic beings, witness to the tempta-
tion, rebellion, war, and subsequent banishment of Lucifer and his
rebel angels.
This teaching, however, does leave space for the special election
of certain souls tasked for specific assignment, such as Elias as John
the Baptist. There are passages that allude to reincarnation but not
in the sense that we each are born over and over. For some tasked
with special assignment or role, the Lordif He so choosescan
resend certain spirits here for fulfillment of prophecy but that, as
far as judgment and salvation are concerned, we do not incarnate
multiple times into the flesh as this would negate the whole reason
for our Lord coming on a DNA rescue mission for our flesh. This
teaching also helps one to understand what the Lord meant when
He said, Before I formed thee in the belly I knew thee; and before
thou camest forth out of the womb I sanctified thee, and I ordained
thee a prophet unto the nations ( Jeremiah 1:5, kjv).

I have loved you, saith the Lord. Yet ye say, Wherein hast
thou loved us? Was not Esau Jacobs brother? saith the
Lord: yet I loved Jacob, And I hated Esau, and laid his
mountains and his heritage waste for the dragons of the
wilderness. Whereas Edom saith, We are impoverished, but
we will return and build the desolate places; thus saith the
Lord of hosts, They shall build, but I will throw down; and
they shall call them, The border of wickedness, and, The
people against whom the Lord hath indignation forever.
Malachi 1:2, kjv

Unless one knows about and understands the Three World Age
teaching, it would be difficult to grasp what the Lord speaks about
in the above passage. For how else can one explain why the Lord
hated a child that hadnt even been born in the fleshand in that
sense was innocent of sinunless one understands that we lived

zen garcia 64
prior spiritual lives during the First World Age before incarnation
into flesh. There, as spirits, we made choices that would affect our
election for life in the Second World Age. The reason Yahweh hated
Esau was because he disdained his birthright during the First World
Age, which he would repeat in the flesh during the Second World
Age. Like flesh beings during the Second World Age, we as spiritual
beings during the First World Age were granted free-will domin-
ion to choose whom we would serve in aligning our allegiances to
Yahweh/Yahushuah or Lucifer/Yaldaboath and his angels.
During the First World Age, one third of the angels of the Lord
willingly abandoned their first estate, one third did nothing, and the
other one third fought for Him. Once death came into being with the
fall of sixth-day Adam, the Lord would establish the Second World
Age as trial for those who either did nothing or rebelled against Him
during the First World Age and war in heaven. It would be during
the Second World Age that Yahushuah Savior Messiah would be
born of woman, die on the cross, defeat death, and offer eternal life
and salvation to those who love and honor Yahweh.
The Three World Age teaching verifies judgment and incarnat-
ing once into the flesh, and not multiple times through multiple lives,
even though as cited Yahushuah can and does utilize certain souls for
special assignment, sending them again for certain role as reflected
by the parable of Elias, who would return as John the Baptist.

And his disciples asked him, saying, Why then say the
scribes that Elias must first come? And Jesus answered
and said unto them, Elias truly shall first come, and
restore all things. But I say unto you, That Elias is come
already, and they knew him not, but have done unto him
whatsoever they listed. Likewise shall also the Son of man
suffer of them. Then the disciples understood that he
spake unto them of John the Baptist.
Matthew 17 (kjv)

65 sons of god
And they asked him, saying, Why say the scribes that
Elias must first come? And he answered and told them,
Elias verily cometh first, and restoreth all things; and how
it is written of the Son of man, that he must suffer many
things, and be set at nought. But I say unto you, That Elias
is indeed come, and they have done unto him whatsoever
they listed, as it is written of him.
Mark 9 (kjv)

First World Age


The First World Age had no conceivable beginning that we could
understand, but is representative of a space and place before time
came into being, when all things were yet still codified in unity and
oneness. Prior to the Big Bang and expansion of universal conscious-
ness, only Yahweh existed. As Creator and Creation, He was and is in
essence all things in their original state of purity, innocence, and one-
ness. This unified state of being is Yahweh prior to unfolding creation
in all variety and myriad form. The Creator had decided to experience
self in expansion and contraction, what would be the breath of life in
bringing forth all worlds, visible from the invisible, perishable from
the imperishable. It was Yahushuah as the Word and only begotten of
the Father who would utilize verbal manifestation to organize every-
thing into existential form. Together they are the breath of life.

In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with
God, and the Word was God. The same was in the begin-
ning with God. All things were made by him; and without
him was not any thing made that was made. In him was
life; and the life was the light of men. And the light shi-
neth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not.
And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and
we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the
Father,) full of grace and truth.
John 1:1-5:14 (kjv)

zen garcia 66
This passage from John heralds the connection between Yahushuah,
the Son, and Yahweh, the Father, to the primal state of oneness that
was prior to what is now. Nothing can exist outside of Them; even
darkness is dependent upon light for form. This passage also reveals
the connection between Creator and creation to Yahushuahs role as
Savior Messiah in that the Son would later adorn the flesh to defeat
death and bring salvation to the world. Lucifer and the rebel angels
knew that Christ would be born of the line of Adam and did eve-
rything they could to deceive and lead astray those He would come
to save. They have even attributed the birth, death, and resurrection
themes to other personas such as Tammuz, Horus, and even the
sun in order to confuse those who would later be born of flesh into
believing either Yahushuah Savior Messiah was just a myth, that He
was born many times in myriad embodiments, or that many others
were equal in regard to His status and power as being the Son of
God. This confusion is part of the groundwork that has been laid
for the coming great deception wherein the antichrist will unveil
himself as Christ to the world.
The angels that participated in the Luciferian rebellion and
ensuing war in heaven hate humanity specifically because we are
fated to inherit those stations abandoned by them. It is because they
have no part in salvation that they are attempting to take with them
to the lake of fire as many of the sons and daughters of humanity as
they possibly can.
One of the seminal events of the First World Age, besides all of
creation being manifest, was Lucifers refusal to serve as an arch-
angel in heaven under the dominion of Yahushuah. We know from
scripture that, prior to the materialization of Adam of Paradise on
the sixth day of creation, Lucifer had already been cast out of the
upper heavens and that he was able to lure a third of the angels of
Yahweh to join him in his rebellion and desire for self rule. The
rebellion of these angels leads to a war and their banishment from
what are the upper heavens.

67 sons of god
This banishment became the cause for why Lucifer would plot
revenge against the second creation of Adam and his wife Eve. So
what lead to the war in heaven, the rebel angels banishment, and
the destruction of the First World Ageincluding Tiamat (Earth),
Lahmu (Mars) and Kingu (Moon)?

It is because of this that you are being detained, because


you belong to me. When you strip off from yourselves
what is corrupted, then you will become illuminators in
the midst of mortal men. And this (is the reason) that you
will fight against the powers, because they do not have rest
like you, since they do not wish that you be saved. Then
the apostles worshiped again saying, Lord, tell us: In what
way shall we fight against the archons, since the archons
are above us?
Then a voice called out to them from the appearance
saying, Now you will fight against them in this way, for
the archons are fighting against the inner man. And you
are to fight against them in this way: Come together and
teach in the world the salvation with a promise. And you,
gird yourselves with the power of my Father, and let your
prayer be known. And he, the Father, will help you as he
has helped you by sending me. Be not afraid, I am with
you forever, as I previously said to you when I was in
the body. Then there came lightning and thunder from
heaven, and what appeared to them in that place was taken
up to heaven.
The Letter of Peter to Philip

The Lord would allow the rebel angels a certain period of time and
free will to act as gods themselves until they had so corrupted the
worlds they inhabited and the places they infiltrated that prayers
and cries of justice so reached unto heaven that Yahushua sent His
own angels to inspect the actions of the lower order of angels. The
Lord would only tolerate a certain manner of injustice before insti-
tuting judgments against those whom force His hand. Over and

zen garcia 68
over through time and space He would have to rebuke them in their
dedication to evil pursuits.
The rebel angels were joined by the fallen watchers during the
time of Jared as another group of the Lords angels challenged Him
on the creation of Adam, claiming that they had been born into
flesh bodies that they would never have transgressed any of the
commandments of the Law. Taking them up on this challenge, the
Lord then transformed them into bodies of flesh and sent them to
the earth, where they were tasked with awakening and enlightening
humanity to the rule and presence of the Most High. But lusting
after the daughters of Cain, they decided instead to mate with the
children of humanity, resulting in the birth of the giants or the men
of renown of Genesis 6, the children of Anak, or Annunaki.
They would establish kingship through their hybrid demigod giant
children and utilize them to oppress, control, and manage the peoples
of the earth. That is why the Lord chose Enoch to serve as a witness
and assigned him the role of immortalizing the historical account of
the fallen angels and their interdiction upon this planet. The judgment
brought against them is spoken about in partial account in both The
Book of Enoch and The Book of the Giants. Those hybrid seed lines that
they brought into being, specifically the hybrid giant lines, were then
wiped out and led by the Lords angels to war against one another.
The rest would be slaughtered in the ultimate judgment of a world-
wide deluge with the Lord, sparing Noah (still pure in his generations,
meaning uncorrupted by fallen angel DNA) and his family, so that
they could then re-populate the planet in pure and replenished inno-
cence. These watchers became evil and joined Lucifer in his rebellion
against the Lord, becoming demonic entities themselves.
Four of these angels will be loosed from the river Euphrates
during the end of days, or as in the days of Noah. After the flood,
the children of Ham resurrect worship of the fallen watchers who
then infiltrate their lines birthing hybrid giant lines in Philistia
and Bashaan.

69 sons of god
The fallen angels and their demigod children are the pantheon
of false gods that the various cultures around the world worship.
Another phenomenon, which is worldwide in mythology, is the so-
called gods raping and stealing spouses from among mortals. The
fact that these forgotten stories provide ancient accounts of suppos-
edly superior beings interbreeding with and abducting the daughters
of man seems to me the same phenomenon described in Genesis
6 where the Sons of God mated with the daughters of human-
ity, resulting in the birth of an unnatural creation, a hybrid race of
beings termed by the Bible as giants or men of renown.

For if I were able I would have destroyed you like one of


them that were before you. For, indeed, I was formed the
first angel: for when God made the heavens, he took a
handful of fire and formed me first, Michael second for he
had his Son before the heavens and the earth and we were
formed, so that we also were created by the will of the Son
and the consent of the Father.
Gospel of Bartholomew

zen garcia 70
Sons of God

To set up the story of the fall of Lucifer and humanity, we must


revisit some texts that allude to his station prior to his expulsion
from heaven. These quotes provide insight into what he was previ-
ous to his refusal to serve and subsequent exile abroad. According
to the texts, he had been an anointed cherub, possibly one of those
protecting the mercy seat of Yahweh as granted to the Son. He may
have even been the first created of the archangels. Once dominion
was granted to Yahushuah, Lucifer envisioned seizing the Godhead
for himself. For this he was cast down and banished from the upper
to the lower heavens.

When Jesus appeared again, Bartholomew saith unto him:


Lord, show us the adversary of men that we may behold
him, of what fashion he is, and what is his work, and
whence he cometh forth, and what power he hath that
he spared not even thee, but caused thee to be hanged
upon the tree Jesus raised him up and said unto him:
Bartholomew, wilt thou see the adversary of men? I tell
thee that when thou beholdest him, not thou only but the
rest of the apostles and Mary will fall on your faces and
become as dead corpses. But they all said unto him: Lord,
let us behold him. And he led them down from the Mount
of Olives and looked wrathfully upon the angels that keep
hell (Tartarus), and beckoned unto Michael to sound
the trumpet in the height of the heavens. And Michael
sounded, and the earth shook, and Beliar came up, being

71
held by 660 angels and bound with fiery chains. And the
length of him was 1,600 cubits and his breadth 40 cubits,
and his face was like a lightning of fire and his eyes full of
darkness (like sparks, Slav.). And out of his nostrils came a
stinking smoke; and his mouth was as the gulf of a preci-
pice, and the one of his wings was four-score cubits. And
straightway when the apostles saw him, they fell to the
earth on their faces and became as dead.
But Jesus came near and raised the apostles and gave
them a spirit of power, and he saith unto Bartholomew:
Come near, Bartholomew, and trample with thy feet on
his neck, and he will tell thee his work, what it is, and how
he deceiveth men. And Jesus stood afar off with the rest
of the apostles. And Barthololmew feared, and raised his
voice and said: Blessed be the name of thine immortal
kingdom from henceforth even for ever. And when he
had spoken, Jesus permitted him, saying: Go and tread
upon the neck of Beliar, and Bartholomew ran quickly
upon him and trode upon his neck: and Beliar trembled.
And Bartholomew was afraid, and fled, and said unto
Jesus: Lord, give me an hem of thy garments that I may
have courage to draw near unto him. But Jesus said unto
him: Thou canst not take an hem of my garments, for
these are not my garments which I wore before I was cru-
cified. And Bartholomew said: Lord, I fear Iest, like as
he spared not thine angels, he swallow me up also. Jesus
saith unto him: Were not all things made by my word,
and by the will of my Father the spirits were made subject
unto Solomon? Thou, therefore, being commanded by my
word, go in my name and ask him what thou wilt.
The Gospel of Bartholomew

For an extensive introspection into the myriad demonic fallen angels


inhabiting our planet with us today, look into the extra-biblical book
called the Testament of Solomon as it gives a detailed account of how
King Solomon was given authority by the Most High to control not

zen garcia 72
only the demons and fallen angels, but also the animal kingdoms.
The Lord gave him this ring to not only verify His authority over
the demons and fallen angels of this world, but also to prove that it
is His choice to whom He grants this kind of power. In this particu-
lar passage, the Lord is confirming not only that the Testament of
Solomon is true, but that Solomon did utilize the demons and fallen
Angels when constructing the grandeur of our Lords Holy Temple
prior to its destruction.

And Bartholomew made the sign of the cross and prayed


unto Jesus and went behind him. And Jesus said to him:
Draw near. And as Bartholomew drew near, fire was kin-
dled on every side, so that his garments appeared fiery. Jesus
saith to Bartholomew: As I said unto thee, tread upon his
neck and ask him what is his power. And Bartholomew
went and trode upon his neck, and pressed down his face
into the earth as far as his ears. And Bartholomew saith
unto him: Tell me who thou art and what is thy name.
And he said to him: Lighten me a little, and I will tell
thee who I am and how I came hither, and what my work
is and what my power is. And he lightened him and saith
to him: Say all that thou hast done and all that thou
doest. And Beliar answered and said: If thou wilt know
my name, at the first I was called Satanael, which is inter-
preted a messenger of God, but when I rejected the image
of God my name was called Satanas, that is, an angel that
keepeth hell (Tartarus). And again Bartholomew saith
unto him: Reveal unto me all things and hide nothing
from me. And he said unto him: I swear unto thee by the
power of the glory of God that even if I would hide aught
I cannot, for he is near that would convict me. For if I were
able I would have destroyed you like one of them that were
before you. For, indeed, I was formed (al. called) the first
angel: for when God made the heavens, he took a handful
of fire and formed me first, Michael second [Vienna MS.
for he had his Son before the heavens and the earth and

73 sons of god
we were formed (for when he took thought to create all
things, his Son spake a word), so that we also were cre-
ated by the will of the Son and the consent of the Father.
He formed, I say, first me, next Michael the chief captain
of the hosts that are above], Gabriel third, Uriel fourth,
Raphael fifth, Nathanael sixth, and other angels of whom I
cannot tell the names. [ Jerusalem MS., Michael, Gabriel,
Raphael, Uriel, Xathanael, and other 6,000 angels.]
The Gospel of Bartholomew

Its important that one take notice of the fact that Satan says that
even though he was formed as the first angel, before even the crea-
tion of Michael, the second archangel, that Yahushuah was already
in existence and that it was the Son as the embodiment of the Father
that created all things into beinga confirmation of John 1, which
also verifies this knowledge. And whereas many believe that Lucifer
was banished from the heavens for not wanting to bow before sixth-
day Adam of Paradise and that he was cast out for not wanting to
be a servant to humanity, the truth of the matter is that he was ban-
ished for refusing to bow before the dominion of the Son when light
was separated from darkness and that all of these things took place
prior to even the creation of sixth-day Adam.

For they are the rod-bearers (lictors) of God, and they


smite me with their rods and pursue me seven times in
the night and seven times in the day, and leave me not at
all and break in pieces all my power. These are the angels
of vengeance which stand before the throne of God: these
are the angels that were first formed. And after them were
formed all the angels. In the first heaven are an hundred
myriads, and in the second an hundred myriads, and in
the third an hundred myriads, and in the fourth an hun-
dred myriads, and in the fifth an hundred myriads, and in
the sixth an hundred myriads, and in the seventh is the

zen garcia 74
first firmament (flat surface) wherein are the powers which
work upon men.
Bartholomew saith unto him: Flow chastisest thou
the souls of men? Beliar saith unto him: Wilt thou that I
declare unto thee the punishment of the hypocrites, of the
back-biters, of the jesters, of the idolaters, and the covet-
ous, and the adulterers, and the wizards, and the diviners,
and of them that believe in us, and of all whom I look
upon (deceive)? (38 Lat. 2: When I will show any illusion
by them.) But they that do these things, and they that con-
sent unto them or follow them, do perish with me. Dost
thou then do these things by thyself alone? And Satan
said: If I were able to go forth by myself, I would have
destroyed the whole world in three days: but neither I nor
any of the six hundred go forth. For we have other swift
ministers whom we command, and we furnish them with
an hook of many points and send them forth to hunt, and
they catch for us souls of men, enticing them with sweet-
ness of divers baits, that is by drunkenness and laughter, by
backbiting, hypocrisy, pleasures, fornication, and the rest
of the trifles that come out of their treasures.
The Gospel of Bartholomew

Banished from the upper heavens early in the history of creation


for reasons which yet remain an undisclosed mystery, the only thing
that makes sense to me in tying the fragments of this story together
is that Lucifer was banished from the upper heavens, for refus-
ing to submit to the authority and command of Adam of Light,
Yahushuah Savior Messiah called forth as the glory of the world.
And while only the Lord knows with certainty as to when Lucifer
was banished from the upper heavens, one scripture, the Book of
the Secrets of Enoch, ascribes this event as having happened on the
second day. Nowhere else have I discovered any mention as to when
the expulsion may have occurred.

75 sons of god
And for all the heavenly troops I imaged the image and
essence of fire, and my eye looked at the very hard, firm
rock, and from the gleam of my eye the lightning received
its wonderful nature, which is both fire in water and water
in fire, and one does not put out the other, nor does the
one dry up the other, therefore the lightning is brighter
than the sun, softer than water and firmer than hard rock.
And from the rock I cut off a great fire, and from the fire I
created the orders of the incorporeal ten troops of angels,
and their weapons are fiery and their raiment a burning
flame, and I commanded that each one should stand in
his order. And one from out the order of angels, having
turned away with the order that was under him, conceived
an impossible thought, to place his throne higher than the
clouds above the earth, that he might become equal in
rank to my power. And I threw him out from the height
with his angels, and he was flying in the air continuously
above the bottomless. On the third day I commanded the
earth to make grow great and fruitful trees, and hills, and
seed to sow, and I planted Paradise, and enclosed it, and
placed as armed guardian flaming angels, and thus I cre-
ated renewal.
The Book of the Secrets of Enoch, 29-30

I affirm, and it is my belief that war in heaven occurred when our


Father the Creator called forth Adam of light, His one and only
begotten Son Yahushuah Savior Messiah as glory of the universe
and gave to Him dominion of all creation. Once dominion was
granted to the Son as the word and physical embodiment of the
hidden Father, Luciferas arch angel and covering cherub of the
Lords mercy seatrebelled against the Father and Son monarchy,
and desiring godhood and universal dominion caused a third of all
the angels to fall with him in revolt.
Lucifer sought to be worshipped and praised like the most high
among the lower order of angels. The gospels cite Lucifers rebel-
lion as a conscious decision, but in the Nag Hammadi codices

zen garcia 76
Yaldaboath, Saklas, or Sammael, the blind god of the lower authori-
ties or demiurge of this planet, did not learn about those existing
prior to and above him until he declared himself as the one and only
god in all existence. And though we will not know the full detail
of exactly what happened during all of those eons of time until our
Lord returns to reveal all things, we are given subtle hints and the
insight of prophets to shed light on this seemingly undefined story.

For this they willingly are ignorant of, that by the word of
God the heavens were of old, and the earth standing out
of the water and in the water: Whereby the world that
then was, being overflowed with water, perished: But the
heavens and the earth, which are now, by the same word
are kept in store, reserved unto fire against the day of judg-
ment and perdition of ungodly men.
2 Peter 3

77 sons of god
Dragon Lords

Details of how the Lord separated the visible worlds from the invis-
ible worlds are given by Yahushuah as the Word in second Enoch,
or the Book of the Secrets of Enoch. In this account the Lord also
mentions why it was that He banished Lucifer and the seraphim
angels that rebelled against Him from heaven. What is not talked
about in scripture is how the fallen angels came to be imprisoned
here in this solar system and upon this Earth. In order to bring clar-
ity to this side of the story, we must revisit ancient Sumerian as
well as Babylonian texts written by the fallen ones themselves as to
what happened during the account of those early years, or what are
referred to as the Prior Times. Its important to realize that the fallen
angels as spirit men were here upon this planet long before the crea-
tion of modern humanity on the sixth day.
Unless one understands this timeline one may be confused, as
most are, into believing that we are at the height of civilization and
technological innovation, when in truth we are at the lowest point as
far as advancement in human development and spiritual evolution.
Sites such as Gobelki Tepe, Tenochtilan, and Baalbek are remains of
Annunaki constructed cities built long ago that have survived even to
this day. And whereas science will claim that these megalithic struc-
tures and cities were built by our so-called primitive ancestors, we
modern humans cannot replicate the construction or reproduction
of such feats as the Pyramids of Giza, Stonehenge, Puma Punku, or
even Petra to this very day. And so we must open ourselves to new

79
possibility in explaining what happened in our solar systems ancient
past. Stories such as the Enuma elish, the Babylonian epic tale of crea-
tion, and another account of the Prior Times from the Lost Book
of Enki must be understood to comprehend our pre-history. These
ancient mythologies allude to the forgotten war between the Lord of
Hosts and the Dragon, also referenced as the beast, Satan, Tiamat,
Rahab, or the adversary. What many do not realize when reading the
symbolic account of these ancient creation tales is that what is being
described in the text is not the creation of the entire universe by an
Annunaki god but a depiction of celestial gods or the different planets
and members of this solar system as they try to determine orbits and
circuits during the early history and development of our solar system.
And while many researchers may have never heard of these creation
tales being deciphered this way, most ancient cultures celebrate this
conflict as the battle that metaphorically depicts how our solar system
came into being long ago. These early creation accounts chronicle the
primordial capture of Niburu, or what weve come to know as planet
X, while immortalizing the cosmic cataclysm that led to the transfor-
mation and placement of modern-day Earth along with the capture
of one of Tiamats moons, the one called Kingu.Niburu, known as the
planet of the crossing, has, had, and still has an essential role to play as
the destroyer in the end of days.
During the early part of the development of our solar system,
while the planets were still coalescing into form and establishing
their orbital circuits, an interloper planet wandering on the edges
of our outer solar system was captured by the gravitational field or
netforce of Neptune and Uranus and lulled into fusion with this sys-
tem. With altered trajectory Niburu was steered into conflict with
the oncoming paths of the other planets that were inbound, spin-
ning counterclockwise on an ecliptic in opposition to Niburu, which
entered moving in a clockwise orbital circuit.
The moons of the Tiamat and Niburu then engage in heavenly
combat of unheralded proportion, spawning the stories that later

zen garcia 80
came to be known as the Babylonian creation epic, the Enuma elish.
The west wind, moon, or satellite of Niburu gutted Tiamat, smash-
ing her inside out into myriads of comet-like pieces, which linger as
testament to Niburus rising and crossing through the solar ecliptic.
The hammered bracelet, or asteroid belt, is evidence that indeed this
ancient cataclysm did happen so long ago. The comets and asteroids
strewn between the inner and outer planets were all born from this
same impact and are nothing more than the leftover debris-field
resultant from the heavenly war between Niburu and what was then
the large watery planet Tiamat. This story is celebrated by many
cultures in one form or another as the slaying of the Dragon Tiamat,
destruction of Rahab, and end of the First World Age as described
by Jeremiah and Peter. Once one understands what is being dis-
cussed, one realizes the story is nothing more than an elaborate
description of the creation of our early solar system.
The First World Age ended also in cataclysmic deluge, but not
the same one Noah was spared from. The deluge of Noahs day
occurred during the Second World Age and after the fall, incarna-
tion into flesh, and incursion of the watchers during the time of
Jared that I will cover in a later chapter.

I beheld the earth, and, lo, it was without form, and void;
and the heavens, and they had no light. I beheld the moun-
tains, and, lo, they trembled, and all the hills moved lightly.
I beheld, and, lo, there was no man, and all the birds of the
heavens were fled. I beheld, and, lo, the fruitful place was a
wilderness, and all the cities thereof were broken down at
the presence of the Lord, and by his fierce anger. For thus
hath the Lord said, The whole land shall be desolate; yet
will I not make a full end.
Jeremiah 4:23-29 (kjv)

Knowing this first, that there shall come in the last days
scoffers, walking after their own lusts, And saying, Where
is the promise of his coming? For since the fathers fell

81 sons of god
asleep, all things continue as they were from the beginning
of the creation. For this they willingly are ignorant of, that
by the word of God the heavens were of old, and the earth
standing out of the water and in the water: Whereby the
world that then was, being overflowed with water, perished:
But the heavens and the earth, which are now, by the same
word are kept in store, reserved unto fire against the day
of judgment and perdition of ungodly men. But, beloved,
be not ignorant of this one thing, that one day is with the
Lord as a thousand years, and a thousand years as one day.
The Lord is not slack concerning his promise, as some men
count slackness; but is longsuffering to us-ward, not willing
that any should perish, but that all should come to repent-
ance. But the day of the Lord will come as a thief in the
night; in the which the heavens shall pass away with a great
noise, and the elements shall melt with fervent heat, the
earth also and the works that are therein shall be burned
up. Seeing then that all these things shall be dissolved, what
manner of persons ought ye to be in all holy conversation
and godliness, looking for and hasting unto the coming of
the day of God, wherein the heavens being on fire shall be
dissolved, and the elements shall melt with fervent heat?
Nevertheless we, according to his promise, look for new
heavens and a new earth, wherein dwelleth righteousness.
2 Peter 3:3-13 (kjv)

These two New Testament passages grant insight into not only how
the First World Age ended but also testify as to how the Second
World Age, the one we are in now, will end ultimately in a judgment
of fire. The Revelation of St. John the Theologian grants readers a
concise and clearer picture of the great and terrible day of the Lord
and how this Earth shall be made flat, high places brought low, low
places brought high, until the Earth is renewed white in innocence
for preparation of our returning Lord. Because most have never
heard of this piece of scripture, I have included it in its entirety at
the end of this book.

zen garcia 82
The Destruction and Re-Creation
It is known, and the story comes down from ancient times,
that there was not one creation but two, a creation and a
re-creation. It is a fact known to the wise that the Earth
was utterly destroyed once then reborn on a second wheel
of creation. At the time of the great destruction of Earth,
God caused a dragon from out of Heaven to come and
encompass her about. The dragon was frightful to behold,
it lashed its tail, it breathed out fire and hot coals, and a
great catastrophe was inflicted upon mankind. The body
of the dragon was wreathed in a cold, bright light and
beneath, on the belly, was a ruddy hued glow while behind
it trailed a flowing tail of smoke. It spewed out cinders and
hot stones, and its breath was foul and stenchful, poisoning
the nostrils of men. Its passage caused great thunderings
and lightnings to rend the thick, darkened sky, all Heaven
and Earth being made hot. The seas were loosened from
their cradles and rose up, pouring across the land.
There was an awful, shrilling trumpeting that out-
powered even the howling of the unleashed winds. Men,
stricken with terror, went mad at the awful sight in the
heavens. They were loosed from their senses and dashed
about, crazed, not knowing what they did. The breath
was sucked from their bodies, and they were burnt with
a strange ash.
Then it passed, leaving Earth enwrapped within a dark
and glowering mantle, which was ruddily lit up inside.
The bowels of the Earth were torn open in great writh-
ing upheavals and a howling whirlwind rent the moun-
tains apart. The wrath of the sky-monster was loosed in
the heavens. It lashed about in flaming fury, roaring like a
thousand thunders; it poured down fiery destruction amid
a welter of thick, black blood. So awesome was the fear-
fully aspected thing that the memory mercifully departed
from man, and his thoughts were smothered under a cloud
of forgetfulness. The Earth vomited forth great gusts of
foul breath from awful mouths opening up in the midst of

83 sons of god
the land. The evil breath bit at the throat before it drove
men mad and killed them. Those who did not die in this
manner were smothered under a cloud of red dust and
ashes or were swallowed by the yawning mouths of Earth
or crushed beneath crashing rocks.
The first sky-monster was joined by another that swal-
lowed the tail of the one going before, but the two could
not be seen at once. The sky monster reigned and raged
above Earth, doing battle to possess it, but the many
bladed sword of God cut them in pieces, and their fall-
ing bodies enlarged the land and the sea. In this manner
the first Earth was destroyed by calamity descending from
out of the skies. The vaults of heaven had opened to bring
forth monsters more fearsome than any that ever haunted
the uneasy dreams of men. Men and their dwelling places
were goneonly sky boulders and red earth remained
where once they werebut amidst all the desolation a few
survived, for man is not easily destroyed. They crept out
from caves and came down from the mountainsides. Their
eyes were wild and their limbs trembled, their bodies
shook, and their tongues lacked control. Their faces were
twisted, and the skin hung loose on their bones. They were
as maddened wild beasts driven into an enclosure before
flames; they knew no law, being deprived of all the wisdom
they once had and those who had guided them were gone.
The Earth, only true Altar of God, had offered up a
sacrifice of life and sorrow to atone for the sins of man-
kind. Man had not sinned in deed but in the things he had
failed to do. Man suffers not only for what he does but for
what he fails to do. He is not chastised for making mis-
takes but for failing to recognize and rectify them. Then
the great canopy of dust and cloud that encompassed the
Earth, enshrouding it in heavy darkness, was pierced by
ruddy light, and the canopy swept down in great cloud-
bursts and raging storm waters.
Cool moontears were shed for the distress of Earth and
the woes of men. When the light of the sun pierced the

zen garcia 84
Earths shroud, bathing the land in its revitalizing glory,
the Earth again knew night and day, for there were now
times of light and times of darkness. The smothering can-
opy rolled away and the vaults of heaven became visible
to man. The foul air was purified and new air clothed the
reborn Earth, shielding her from the dark hostile void of
heaven.
The rainstorms ceased to beat upon the faces of the
land and the waters stilled their turmoil. Earthquakes no
longer tore the Earth open, nor was it burned and buried by
hot rocks. The land masses were re-established in stability
and solidity, standing firm in the midst of the surrounding
waters. The oceans fell back to their assigned places and
the land stood steady upon its foundations. The sun shone
upon land and sea, and life was renewed upon the face of
the Earth. Rain fell gently once more and clouds of fleece
floated across dayskies. The waters were purified, the sedi-
ment sank and life increased in abundance.
Life was renewed, but it was different. Man survived,
but he was not the same. The sun was not as it had been
and a moon had been taken away. Man stood in the midst
of renewal and regeneration. He looked up into the heav-
ens above in fear for the awful powers of destruction
lurking there. Henceforth, the placid skies would hold a
terrifying secret. Man found the new Earth firm and the
Heavens fixed.
He rejoiced but also feared, for he lived in dread that
the heavens would again bring forth monsters and crash
about him. When men came forth from their hiding
places and refuges, the world their fathers had known was
gone forever. The face of the land was changed and Earth
was littered with rocks and stones which had fallen when
the structure of heaven collapsed. One generation groped
in the desolation and gloom, and as the thick darkness was
dispelled its children believed they were witnessing a new
creation. Time passed, memory dimmed and the record of
evens was no longer clear. Generation followed genera-

85 sons of god
tion and as the ages unfolded, new tongues and new tales
replaced the old.
Kolbrin Bible

The collapse of the structure of heaven wherein the Earth was gut-
ted, utterly broken, and even lost a moon is the same event that
is celebrated in all of the ancient creation epics as the slaying of
Tiamat, which became reborn as Ki, the new Earth. On Niburus
second pass through the solar system, the two largest chunks of
Tiamats slain carcass were gravitationally shifted from an orbital
position outside of Mars to one inside of Mars. This shift placed
the still-coalescing Earth at the perfect distance from Apsu, or the
sun, to begin harboring the incredible development of life on this
planet. Unless one understands that this account is an early depic-
tion of how our Lord utilized Niburu to create the condition and
circumstance necessary to begin a new chapter in the story of life
within our solar system, one could not understand how it was this
one single cataclysmic event so long ago shifted Tiamat to where the
Earth is now, nor would one understand the true nature behind this
event and why it was relegated such importance by the Most High,
the Annunaki, and the elders of humanity.

Now this is the account of the Earth and its gold;


It is an account of the Beginning
and how the celestial gods created were.
In the Beginning,
When in the Above the gods in the heavens
had not been called into being,
And in the Below Ki, the Firm Ground,
had not yet been named,
Alone in the void there existed Apsu,
their Primordial Begetter.
In the heights of the Above,
the celestial gods had not yet been created;
In the waters of the Below,

zen garcia 86
the celestial gods had not yet appeared.
Above and Below, the gods had not yet been formed,
destinies were not yet decreed.
No reed had yet been formed, no marshland had
appeared;
Alone did Apsu reign in the void.
Then by his winds the primordial waters were mingled,
A divine and artful spell Apsu upon the waters cast.
On the voids deep he poured a sound sleep;
Tiamat, the Mother of All,
as a spouse for himself he fashioned.
A celestial mother, a watery beauty she was indeed!
Beside him Apsu little Mummu then brought forth,
As his messenger he him appointed, a gift for Tiamat to
present.
A gift resplendent to his spouse Apsu granted:
A shining metal, the everlasting gold, for her alone to
possess!
Then it was that the two their waters mingled,
divine children between them to bring forth.
Male and female were the celestials created;
Lahmu and Lahamu by names they were called.
In the Below did Apsu and Tiamat make them an abode.
Before then had grown in age and in stature,
In the waters of the Above Anshar and Kishar were
formed;
Surpassing their brothers in size they were.
As a celestial couple the two were fashioned;
A son, An, in the distant heavens was their heir.
Then Antu, to be his spouse, as Ans equal was brought
forth;
As a boundary of the Upper Waters their abode was
made.
Thus were three heavenly couples,
Below and Above, in the depths created;
By names they were called, the family of Apsu
with Mummu and Tiamat they formed.

87 sons of god
At that time, Nibiru had not yet been seen,
The Earth was not yet called into being.
Mingled were the heavenly waters;
by a Hammered Bracelet they were not yet separated.
At that time, circuits were not yet fully fashioned;
The destinies of the gods were not yet firmly decreed;
The celestial kinfolk banded together;
erratic were their ways.
Their ways to Apsu were verily loathsome;
Tiamat, getting no rest, was aggrieved and raged.
A throng to march by her side she formed,
A growling, raging host against the sons of Apsu
she brought forth.

The Moons of Tiamat


Withal eleven of this kind she brought forth;
She made the firstborn, Kingu, chief among them.
When the celestial gods of this did hear,
for council they rallied.
Kingu she has elevated, to rank as An command to him
she gave! to each other they said.
A Tablet of Destiny to his chest she has attached,
his own circuit to acquire,
To battle against the gods her offspring
Kingu she instructed.
Who shall stand up to Tiamat? the gods asked each other.
None in their circuits stepped forward,
none a weapon for battle would bear.

Seduction of Niburu
At that tirne, in the heart of the Deep a god was
engendered,
In a Chamber of Fates, a place of destinies, was he born.
By an artful Creator was he fashioned,
the son of his own Sun he was.
From the Deep where he was engendered,
the god from his family in a rushing departed;

zen garcia 88
A gift of his Creator, the Seed of Life,
with him away he carried.
To the void he set his course;
a new destiny he was seeking.
The first to glimpse the wandering celestial
was the ever-watchful Antu.
Alluring was his figure, a radiance he was beaming,
Lordly was his gait, exceedingly great was his course.
Of all the gods he was the loftiest,
surpassing theirs his circuit was.
The first to glimpse him was Antu,
her breast by child never sucked.
Come, be my son! she called to him.
Let me your mother become!
She cast her net and made him welcome,
made his course for the purpose suited.
Her words filled the newcomers heart with pride;
the one who would nurse him made him haughty.
His head to doubled size grew larger,
four members at his sides he sprouted.
He moved his lips in acceptance,
a godly fire from them blazed forth.
Toward Antu his course he turned,
his face to An soon to show.
When An saw him, My son! My son!
with exaltation he shouted.
To leadership you shall be consigned,
a host by your side will be your servants!
Let Nibiru be your name, as Crossing forever known!
He bowed to Nibiru,
turning his face at Nibirus passage;
He spread his net,
for Nibiru four servants he brought forth,
His host by his side to be: the South Wind, the North
Wind, the Fast Wind, the West Wind.
With joyful heart An to Anshar his forebear
the arrival of Nibiru announced.

89 sons of god
Anshar upon this hearing, Gaga, who was by his side,
as an emissary sent forth
Words of wisdom to An deliver,
a task to Nibiru to assign.
He charged Gaga to give voice to what was in his heart,
to An thus say:
Tiamat, she who bore us, now detests us;
She has set up a warring host, she is furious with rage.
Against the gods, her children,
eleven warriors march by her side;
Kingu among them she elevated,
a destiny to his chest she attached without right.
No god among us against her venom can stand up,
her host in us all has fear established.
Let Nibiru become our Avenger!
Let him vanquish Tiamat, let him save our lives!
For him decree a fate, let him go forth
and face our mighty foe!
To An Gaga departed; he bowed before him,
the words of Anshar he repeated.
An to Nlbiru his forebears words repeated,
Gagas message to him he revealed.
To the words Nibiru with wonder listened;
of the mother who would her children devour
with fascination he heard.
His heart, without saying,
to set out against Tiamat him already prompted.
He opened his mouth, to An and Gaga he thus said:
If indeed I am to vanquish Tiamat your lives to save,
Convene the gods to assembly,
my destiny proclaim supreme!
Let all the gods agree in council to make me the leader,
bow to my command!
When Lahmu and Lahamu heard this,
they cried out with anguish:
Strange was the demand, its meaning cannot be fath-
omed! Thus they said.

zen garcia 90
The gods who decree the fates with each other consulted;
To make Nibiru their Avenger they all agreed,
to him an exalted fate decreed.
From this day on, unchallengeable shall be your com-
mandments! to him they said.
No one among us gods shall transgress your bounds!
Go, Nibiru, be our Avenger!
They fashioned for him a princely circuit
toward Tiamat to proceed;
They gave Nibiru blessings,
they gave Nibiru awesome weapons.
Anshar three more winds of Nibiru brought forth:
the Evil Wind, the Whirlwind, the Matchless Wind.
Kishar with a blazing flame filled his body,
a net to enfold Tiamat therewith.
Thus ready for battle,
Nibiru toward Tiamat directly set his course.

War in Heaven
Now this is the account of the Celestial Battle,
And how the Earth lead come to be,
and of Nibirus destiny.
The lord went forth, his fated course he followed,
Toward the raging Tiamat he set his face,
a spell with his lips he uttered.
As a cloak for protection he the Pulser
and the Emitter put on;
With a fearsome radiance his head was crowned.
On his right he posted the Smiter,
on his left the Repeller he placed.
The seven winds, his host of helpers,
like a storm he sent forth;
Toward the raging Tiamat he was rushing,
clamoring for battle.
The gods thronged about him,
then from his path they departed,
To scan Tiamat and her helpers alone he was advancing,

91 sons of god
The scheme of Kingu, her hosts commander, to conceive.
When he saw valiant Kingu, blurred became his vision;
As he gazed upon the monsters his direction was
distracted,
His course became upset, his doings were confused.
Tiamats band tightly her encircled,
with terror they trembled.
Tiamat to her roots gave a shudder,
a mighty roar she emitted;
On Nibiru she cast a spell,
engulfed him with her charms.
The issue between them was joined,
the battle was unavoided!
Face to face they came, Tiamat and Nibiru;
against each other they were advancing.
They for battle approached,
they pressed on for single combat.
The Lord spread his net, to encompass her he cast it;
With fury Tiamat cried out,
like one possessed she lost her senses.
The Evil Wind, which had been behind him,
Nibiru drove forward,
in her face he let it loose;
She opened her mouth the Evil Wind to swallow,
but could not close her lips.
The Evil Wind charged her belly,
into her innards it made its way.
Her innards were howling, her body was distended,
her mouth was open wide.
Through the opening Nibiru shot a brilliant arrow
a lightning most divine.
It pierced her innards, her belly it tore apart;
It tore into her womb, it split apart her heart.
Having thus subdued her,
her life-breath he extinguished.
The lifeless body Nibiru surveyed,
like a slaughtered carcass Tiamat now was.

zen garcia 92
Beside their lifeless mistress,
her eleven helpers trembled with terror;
In Nibirus net they were captured,
unable they were to flee.
Kingu, who by Tiamat was made the hosts chief,
was among them.
The Lord put him in fetters,
to his lifeless mistress he bound him.
He wrested from Kingu the Tablets of Destinies,
unrightly to him given,
Stamped it with his own seal,
fastened the Destine to his own chest.
The others of Tiamats band as captives he bound,
in his circuit he them ensnared.
He trampled them underfoot, cut them up to pieces.
He bound them all to his circuit;
to turn around he made them, backward to course.
From the Place of the Battle Nibiru then departed,
To the gods who had him
appointed the victory to announce.
He made a circuit about Apsu,
to Kishar and Anshar lie journeyed.
Gaga came out to greet him,
as a herald to the others he then journeyed.

A New Heaven and a New Earth


Beyond An and Antu,
Nibiru to the Abode in the Deep proceeded.
The fate of lifeless Tiamat and of Kingu he then
considered,
To Tiamat, whom he had subdued,
the Lord Nibiru then returned.
He made his way to her,
paused to view her lifeless body;
To artfully divide the monster
in his heart lie was planning.
Then, as a mussel, into two parts he split her,

93 sons of god
her chest from her lower parts he separated.
Her inner channels he cut apart,
her golden veins he beheld with wonder.
Trodding upon her hinder part,
the Lord her upper part completely severed.
The North Wind, his helper,
from his side he summoned,
To thrust away the severed head
the Wind he commanded,
in the void to place it.
Nibiru Wind upon Tiamat then hovered,
sweeping upon her gushing waters.
Nibiru shot a lightning, to North Wind he gave a signal;
In a brilliance was Tiamats upper part
to a region unknown carried.
With her the bound Kingu was also exiled,
of the severed part a companion to be.
The hinder parts fate Nibiru then considered:
As an everlasting trophy of the battle he wished it to be,
A constant reminder in the heavens,
the Place of the Battle to enshrine.
With his mace the hinder part
he smashed to bits and pieces,
Then strung them together
as a band to form a Hammered Bracelet.
Locking them together, as watchmen he stationed them,
A Firmament to divide the waters from the waters.
The Upper Waters above the Firmament
from the Waters Below it he separated;
Artful works Nibiru thus fashioned.
The Lord then crossed the heavens
to survey the regions;
From Apsus quarter to the abode of Gaga
he measured the dimensions.
The edge of the Deep Nibiru then examined,
toward his birthplace he cast his gaze.
He paused and hesitated; then to the Firmament,

zen garcia 94
the Place of the Battle, slowly he returned.
Passing again in Apsus region,
of the Suns missing spouse he thought with remorse.
He gazed upon Tiamats wounded half,
to her Upper Part he gave attention;
The waters of life, her bounty,
from the wounds were still pouring.
Her golden veins Apsus rays were reflecting.
The Seed of Life, his Creators legacy,
Nibiru then remembered.
When he trod on Tiamat,
when he split her asunder,
to her the seed he surely imparted!
He addressed words to Apsu, to him thus saying:
With your warming rays, to the wounds give healing!
Let the broken part new life be given,
in your family as a daughter to be,
Let the waters to one place be gathered, let firm land
appear!
By Firm Land let her be called,
Ki henceforth her name to be!
Apsu to the words of Nibiru gave heed:
Let the Earth join my family,
Ki, Firm Land of the Below,
let Earth her name henceforth be!
By her turning let there day and night be;
in the days my healing rays to her I shall provide.
Let Kingu be a creature of the night,
to shine at night 1 shall appoint him
Earths companion, the Moon forever to be!
Nibiru the Words of Apsu with satisfaction heard.
He crossed the heavens and surveyed the regions,
To the gods who had him elevated
he granted permanent stations,
Their circuits he destined that none shall transgress
nor fall short of each other.
He strengthened the heavenly locks,

95 sons of god
gates on both sides he established.
An outermost abode he chose for himself,
beyond Gaga were its dimensions.
The great circuit to be his destiny
he beseeched Apsu for him to decree.
All the gods spoke up from their stations:
Let Nibirus sovereignty be surpassing!
Most radiant of the gods he is,
let him truly the Son of the Sun be!
From his quarter Apsu gave his blessing:
Nibiru shall hold the crossing of Heaven and Earth;
Crossing shall be his name!
The gods shall cross over neither above nor below;
He shall hold the central position,
the shepherd of the gods he shall be.
A Shar shall be his circuit;
that his Destiny will forever be!
Lost Book of Enki 46-54

The battle between the Dragon and the Lord of hosts, once under-
stood, can be found fragmented in all other epic creation tales. The
reason I cite this reference about the Prior Times from Zechariah
Sitchins The Lost Book of Enki is because the Enuma elish and all
of the other creation epics are wrecked with lines missing and pas-
sages being undecipherable. I picked this translation because of its
completeness, and even though its not well known, it does detail
the account of our solar systems creation better than most avail-
able sources. I hope that this info sheds light on what all of the
other cultures are speaking about in their accounts of creation and
its beginnings.

Creation of the World by Marduk


1. The holy house, the house of the gods, in the holy place had
not yet been made;

zen garcia 96
2. 2 . No reed had sprung up, no tree had been created.

3. No brick had been laid, no building had been set up;

4. No house had been erected, no city had been built;

5. No city had been made, no creature had been created.

6. Nippur had not been made, E-kur had not been built;

7. Erech had not been created, E-ana had not been built;

8. The Deep had not been created, Eridu had not been built;

9. Of the holy house, the house of the gods, the habitation had
not been made.

10. All lands were sea.

11. At that time there was a movement in the sea;

12. Then was Eridu made, and E-sagil was built,

13. E-sagil, where in the midst of the Deep the god Lugal-dul-
azaga 1 dwelleth;

14. The city of Babylon was built, and E-sagil was finished.

15. The gods, the Anunnaki, he 2 created at one time;

16. The holy city, the dwelling, of their hearts desire, they pro-
claimed supreme.

17. Marduk laid a reed upon the face of the waters,

18. He formed dust and poured it out beside the reed.

19. That he might cause the gods to dwell in the habitation of


their hearts desire,

20. He formed mankind.

97 sons of god
21. The goddess Aruru together with him I created the seed
of mankind.

22. The beasts of the field and living creatures in the field he formed.

23. He created the Tigris and the Euphrates, and he set them in
their place;

24. Their names he declared in goodly fashion.

25. The grass, the rush of the marsh, the reed, and the forest
he created,

26. The green herb of the field he created,

27. The lands, the marshes, and the swamps;

28. The wild cow and her young, the wild calf; the ewe and her
young, the lamb of the fold;

29. Plantations and forests;

30. The he-goat and the mountain-goat him.

31. The Lord Marduk laid in a dam by the side of the sea;

32. [He ] a swamp, he made a marsh

33. [] he brought into existence.

34. [Reeds he form]ed, trees he created;

35. [] he made in their place.

36. [Bricks he laid], buildings he set up;

37. [Houses he made], cities he built;

38. [Cities he made], creatures he created.

39. [Nippur he made], E-kur he built;

40. [Erech he made, E-an]a he built.

zen garcia 98
Reverse Relief
1. [] the decree []

2. [] []

3f. Thy exalted minister is Papsukal, the wise counsellor of


the gods.

5. May Nin-aha-kud, the daughter of Ea

6. Purify thee with the pure censer,

7. And may she cleanse thee with cleansing fire!

8f. With a cup of pure water from the Deep shalt thou purify
thy way!

10. By the incantation of Marduk, the king of the hosts of heaven


and earth,

11. May the abundance of the land enter into thee,

12. And may thy decree be accomplished for ever!

13f. O E-zida, thou glorious dwelling, thou art dear unto the hearts
of Anu and Ishtar!

15. May (Ezida) shine like the heavens, may it be bright like the
earth, may it [be glorious] like the heart of heaven,

16. [And may ] be firmly established!

Babylonian Creation Tale

Many are now coming to the realization that our solar system reflects
deviations and possibilities that are only now becoming topic for
discussion. And even though we have ancient creation stories and
mythologies that hint at the chaotic nature of the early formation
of our own planet and solar system, science is only beginning to
confirm what has been prophesied within the Word for thousands

99 sons of god
of years. Once one understands this timeline and how it correlates
with the formation of our universe and this solar system in Genesis
1, one can then understand how it is that the ancient mythologies
align with the Revelation of Moses in Genesis. And just to verify
that Niburu did in fact come into our solar system as stated by these
ancient stories, I present to you this bit of information as it serves as
further confirmation.

Rotation of Venus by Fraser Cain on August 4, 2009


Venus is a twin to our own Earth. It has a similar size, mass, den-
sity, and chemical composition. Of course, its high temperatures and
extreme atmospheric pressure make it different. And theres another
aspect of Venus thats different from Earth; the rotation of Venus is
longer than its yearoh, and Venus rotates backward.
Remember from science class that a rotation is when an object
spins once on its axis, and a revolution is when it travels once around
in orbit around another object. So the Earth takes one day to rotate
on its axis, and it takes one year to revolve around the Sun in orbit.
Venus, on the other hand, takes 243 days to turn once on its axis, and
it takes almost 225 days to travel once around the Sun in orbit. As
you can see, a day on Venus is longer than its year.
If thats not strange enough, the rotation of Venus is backward.
Seen from above, all of the planets in the Solar System rotate coun-
ter-clockwise. This means that eastern regions see the sun before
western regions. But that rotation on Venus is backward, so its going
clockwise. If you could stand on the surface of Venus you would see
the sun rise in the west and then take 116.75 days to travel across the
sky and then set in the east.
So why is the rotation of Venus backward? Astronomers think
that Venus was impacted by another large planet early in its history
billions of years ago. The combined momentum between the two
objects averaged out to the current rotational speed and direction.

zen garcia 100


The deviations of movements within the orbital positions of
planetsincluding the fact that Venus spins opposite to the normal
rotation of the other planets of this solar systemis, in my postula-
tion, verification that there is and was a planetary sized interloper
that affected the order of the solar system sometime in our ancient
past. The ancient accounts cite this interloper as being the 12th
member of our solar system, called Niburu or the Destroyeralso
called the planet of the crossing. Its my opinion that this planet
still has a part to play in the unfolding End of Days scenario of
Revelation as laid out by John.

101 sons of god


Prior Times:
Mission Earth

My assertion that the fallen angels ruled first on this planetprior to


the creation of modern-day humanityhas been criticized by those
that believe the entire history of the universe spans only 7,000 years.
It seems obvious to me that the history of not only the universe but
even that of our own planet are very ancient indeed and that we have
much yet much to learn about our past and what we think we know
as certain history. I find that once one studies the worlds religious
traditions and oral historiesand put them together with the col-
lections of mythology fairy tale and folk history available to us from
all the cultures of the worldthat the same story is repeated over
and over everywhere.
Cultures as varied as the peoples of the world, in their ancient
past all seem to hold record of god-like beings long ago descending
from the stars or heavens to interject themselves into the affairs of
this planet. And because they were seemingly superior in knowledge,
technology, and ability, ancient peoples accepted them willingly as
benevolent emissaries and established cultures and civilizations to
cater to their needs even as they began to be mistreated.

For Primitive Workers, to the Abzu confined,


did the Edin heroes clamor.
For forty Shars was relief only to the Abzu provided!

103
The heroes in the Edin shouted,
Our toil has increased beyond endurance,
let us have the Workers too!
While Enlil and Enki the matter were debating,
Ninurta the decision into his hands took:
With fifty heroes an expedition to the Abzu he led,
with weapons were they armed.
In the forests and the steppes of the Abzu,
the Earthlings they chased,
With nets they them captured,
male and female to the Edin they them brought.
To do all manner of chores, in the orchards and in the cities,
they trained them.
Lost Book of Enki, 164-165

Once one begins to realize that the fallen ones were responsible for
the introduction of evil into the story of our planet and that unless
one bases their foundation for reality on this one truth, nothing
seemingly will fit into place or makes sense; one will no longer blame
the Most High for the perpetuation of evil on this plane of existence
and understand why sin was ascribed to the fallen angels.

I heard His voice: Fear not, Enoch, thou righteous man and
scribe of righteousness: approach hither and hear my voice.
And go, say to the Watchers of heaven, who have sent thee
to intercede for them: You should intercede for men, and
not men for you: Wherefore have ye left the high, holy, and
eternal heaven, and lain with women, and defiled yourselves
with the daughters of men and taken to yourselves wives,
and done like the children of earth, and begotten giants (as
your) sons And though ye were holy, spiritual, living the
eternal life, you have defiled yourselves with the blood of
women, and have begotten (children) with the blood of
flesh, and, as the children of men, have lusted after flesh and
blood as those also do who die and perish.

zen garcia 104


Therefore have I given them wives also that they might
impregnate them, and beget children by them, that thus
nothing might be wanting to them on earth. But you
were formerly spiritual, living the eternal life, and immor-
tal for all generations of the world. And therefore I have
not appointed wives for you; for as for the spiritual ones
of the heaven, in heaven is their dwelling. And now, the
giants, who are produced from the spirits and flesh, shall
be called evil spirits upon the earth, and on the earth shall
be their dwelling. Evil spirits have proceeded from their
bodies; because they are born from men and from the
holy Watchers is their beginning and primal origin; they
shall be evil spirits on earth, and evil spirits shall they be
called. [As for the spirits of heaven, in heaven shall be their
dwelling, but as for the spirits of the earth which were
born upon the earth, on the earth shall be their dwelling.]
And the spirits of the giants afflict, oppress, destroy,
attack, do battle, and work destruction on the earth, and
cause trouble: they take no food, but nevertheless hunger
and thirst, and cause offences. And these spirits shall rise
up against the children of men and against the women,
because they have proceeded from them.
From the days of the slaughter and destruction and
death of the giants, from the souls of whose flesh the
spirits, having gone forth, shall destroy without incurring
judgement -thus shall they destroy until the day of the
consummation, the great judgement in which the age shall
be consummated, over the Watchers and the godless, yea,
shall be wholly consummated. And now as to the watch-
ers who have sent thee to intercede for them, who had
been aforetime in heaven, (say to them): You have been in
heaven, but all the mysteries had not yet been revealed to
you, and you knew worthless ones, and these in the hard-
ness of your hearts you have made known to the women,
and through these mysteries women and men work much
evil on earth. Say to them therefore: You have no peace.
Book of Enoch, 15:1-16:4

105 sons of god


A serious truth seeker that dedicates self to studying the Word of
Yahweh God will find that the scriptures contain all answers and
explain all things. The word details, in my opinion, the true nature
of humanitys relationship with these fallen beings and cites how
the rebel angels brought evil into the world. The Book of Giants
and Enoch speak volumes as to who these groups of celestial beings
were, why they decided to act as gods themselves, and how they
abandoned their first estate in search of worlds to rule their own.
Christians know this story as Lucifers fall from grace and outright
rejection of authority, and yet most do not associate the rebel angels
with the Nephilim of Genesis 6 or the Annunaki of Sumerian leg-
end. Most believe these beings to be different groups of mytho-
logical entities; however, in my work I have found them to be one
and the same. If one does not know that these beings are one and
the same, one might possibly be set-up for the strong delusion that
these fallen ones are benevolent and that they areand werethe
de facto creators of humanity. This is the strong delusion spoken of
in 2 Thessalonians, And for this cause God shall send them strong
delusion, that they should believe a lie.
Having studied much of what is available as far as wisdom texts
from all cultures, its my assertion that the Annunaki, or those from
heaven to earth came, are the same Nephilim (fallen angels, not
giants) of Genesis 6, powers, principalities, and rulers of darkness of
Ephesians 6, archons of the Nag Hammadi codices, and rebel angels
described in the Books of Enoch. In order for me to establish who
these beings are and that they were here before the creation of human-
ity on the sixth day, I will cite two pieces of information which together
lend credence to the others accountingone the Sumerian king list
and another similar king list proposed by Berossusa Hellenized
Chaldean philosopher and astrologer commissioned by Antiochus I
to account for pre-human history. I mention the king list because,
though they seem implausible as far as length of reigns, what people
do not realize is that the first rulers on the list were demigods in the

zen garcia 106


sense that they were hybrid beings, children of the Nephilim cou-
pling with the peoples of pre-adamic humanity. And though it seems
almost impossible to believe that such beings could have once existed
in the ancient past, there are myriad bone fragments, skeletons, skulls,
and artifacts discovered from all parts of the world testifying to the
existence and presence of these semi-divine beings and the primitive
workers they manipulated into existence upon the world stage. For
example, in 2011 Peruvian anthropologists unearthed a cone shaped
skull of two hybrid, red-haired giants, which other anthropologists
classified as not being human. The reports of red-haired giants were
found in a small town and city newspapers countrywide. One such
account comes from the San Diego Union Journal of 1947:

A retired Ohio doctor has discovered relics of an ancient


civilization, whose men were 8 to 9 feet tall in the desert
near the Nevada-California line, an associate said today.
Howard E. Hill of Los Angeles speaking before the
Transportation Club, disclosed that several well-preserved
mummies were taken yesterday from caverns in an area
roughly 180 miles square, extending through much of
Nevada and California.

According to the article and Dr. Hill, the remains of this ancient
race and their civilization date back some twenty to thirty thousand
years ago, prior to the creation of modern day Adam and Eve. One
thing of curiosity mentioned in the article is that old cave mark-
ings found on site resemble markings used by the Masonic Order
and that other markings resembled Egyptian hieroglyphs. Dr. Hill
speculated that these people were the survivors of Atlantis, conclud-
ing that the mummified remains had to be archaic because they were
found clothed in a type of leather, which cannot be tied to any known
creature in existence today. What is strange about this story is that
stories and mythologies of red-haired giants cross the globe, with
recent discoveries of Chinese red-haired giants in the Tarim basin

107 sons of god


area of China. These discoveries prompted National Geographic to
produce a 2007 documentary called Ancient Caucasian Mummies
Found In China. This documentary further verifies my conclusion
and theories. Truthfully, if one seeks, one will find numerous stories
and mythologies worldwide that verify my hypothesis.
And though humanity no longer has access to Beroussus orig-
inal writings in complete form, we are blessed to have fragments
preserved in the extensively quoted tracts of other ancient his-
torical writers citing from his original five books on the history of
Babylonia. It takes years of study to understand the true nature of
who these beings really are and what their historical interaction with
humans has been. Its only by knowing what happened in the past
that we can decide how best to approach such similar modern-day
phenomenon as alien abductions.
Berossus account of angelic interaction, not surprisingly, paral-
lels the Dead Sea Scroll accounts of the Book of Enoch, Book of
Giants, as well as Sumerian cuneiform Egyptian hieroglyphic depic-
tions of hybrid monstrosities lurking in the world during our ancient
past. Unless one has studied in depth both Hebraic-Christian herit-
age as well as the Sumerian Egyptian Celtic chronicles, one would
not know how to piece these stories together.
Berossus, Mantheo, and even Josephus all confirm that the
mutiny of the Annunaki angels took place prior to the creation of
modern humanity. Its important to understand this point as it is
key for understanding Genesis 1s declaration that the Elohim were
involved prior to the creation of sixth day humanity with manipu-
lating the genome of pre-adamic humanity or Bigfoot looking Cro-
Magnon Neanderthal man. I will expound upon the Genesis 1 crea-
tion story when explaining the circumstances for why Yahushuah
created sixth day modern humanity, why Adam was given the breath
of life, why he was separated from the fallen angels and placed in a
protective enclosure called Paradise, and why it was necessary for

zen garcia 108


Lucifer to disguise himself in the form of a serpent in order to gain
access to the Lords highest and newest creation.
So much is happening that is not being discussed within
Genesis. Unless someone spends a lot of time researching all of the
other cultural mythologies, one would have a difficult time piecing
together a complete picture of what happened during the previous
aeons of Earth history. The Sumerian teachings also provide eye
witness account as to what happened during the prior times after the
destruction of Tiamat and creation of Ki, the new earth, when Enki,
or whom Beroussus calls the demiurge, Cronus, Satan arrived to this
planet with a group of fifty other Annunaki somewhere between
450,000 to 432,000 years ago.

Beroussus, in the first book of his history of Babylonia,


informs us that he lived in the age of Alexander the son of
Philip. And he mentions that there were written accounts,
preserved at Babylon with the greatest care, comprehend-
ing a period of above fifteen myriads of years: and that
these writings contained histories of the heaven and of
the sea; of the birth of mankind; and of the kings, and of
the memorable actions which they had achieved. And in
the first place he describes Babylonia as a country situated
between the Tigris and the Euphrates: that it abounded
with wheat, and barley, and ocrus, and sesame; and that in
the lakes were produced the roots called gongre, which are
fit for food, and in respect to nutriment similar to barley.
That there were also palm trees and apples, and a
variety of fruits; fish also and birds, both those which are
merely of flight, and those which frequent the lakes. He
adds, that those parts of the country which bordered upon
Arabia, were without water, and barren; but that the parts
which lay on the other side were both hilly and fertile. At
Babylon there was (in these times) a great resort of people
of various nations, who inhabited Chalda, and lived in
a lawless manner like the beasts of the field. In the first
year there appeared, from that part of the Erythran sea

109 sons of god


which borders upon Babylonia, an animal destitute of rea-
son, by name Oannes, whose whole body (according to
the account of Apollodorus) was that of a fish; that under
the fishs head he had another head, with feet also below,
similar to those of a man, subjoined to the fishs tail. His
voice too, and language, was articulate and human; and a
representation of him is preserved even to this day.

Impatient, Ea donned his Fishs suit;


within his chest his heart was like a drum beating.
Into the marsh he jumped,
toward its edge hurried steps he directed.
Lost Book of Enki

This Being was accustomed to pass the day among men; but
took no food at that season; and he gave them an insight
into letters and sciences, and arts of every kind. He taught
them to construct cities, to found temples, to compile laws,
and explained to them the principles of geometrical knowl-
edge. He made them distinguish the seeds of the earth,
and shewed them how to collect the fruits; in short, he
instructed them in every thing which could tend to soften
manners and humanize their lives. From that time, noth-
ing material has been added by way of improvement to his
instructions. And when the sun had set, this Being Oannes,
retired again into the sea, and passed the night in the deep;
for he was amphibious. After this there appeared other ani-
mals like Oannes, of which Berossus proposes to give an
account when he comes to the history of the kings.
Moreover Oannes wrote concerning the generation
of mankind; and of their civil polity; and the following
is the purport of what he said: There was a time in which
there existed nothing but darkness and an abyss of waters,
wherein resided most hideous beings, which were pro-
duced of a two-fold principle. There appeared men, some
of whom were furnished with two wings, others with four,
and with two faces. They had one body but two heads:

zen garcia 110


the one that of a man, the other of a woman: and like-
wise in their several organs both male and female. Other
human figures were to be seen with the legs and horns of
goats: some had horses feet: while others united the hind
quarters of a horse with the body of a man, resembling in
shape the hippocentaurs. Bulls likewise were bred there
with the heads of men; and dogs with fourfold bodies, ter-
minated in their extremities with the tails of fishes: horses
also with the heads of dogs: men too and other animals,
with the heads and bodies of horses and the tails of fishes.
In short, there were creatures in which were combined
the limbs of every species of animals. In addition to these,
fishes, reptiles, serpents, with other monstrous animals,
which assumed each others shape and countenance. Of all
which were preserved delineations in the temple of Belus
at Babylon.
The person, who presided over them, was a woman
named Omoroca; which in the Chaldan language is
Thalatth; in Greek Thalassa, the sea (Tiamat); but which
might equally be interpreted the Moon. All things being
in this situation, Belus came, and cut the woman asunder:
and of one half of her he formed the earth, and of the
other half the heavens; and at the same time destroyed the
animals within her. All this (he says) was an allegorical
description of nature. For, the whole universe consisting of
moisture, and animals being continually generated therein,
the deity above-mentioned took off his own head: upon
which the other gods mixed the blood, as it gushed out,
with the earth; and from thence were formed men.
On this account it is that they are rational, and partake
of divine knowledge. This Belus, by whom they signify
Jupiter (Niburu), divided the darkness, and separated the
Heavens from the Earth, and reduced universe to order.
But the animals, not being able to bear the prevalence of
light, died. Belus upon this, seeing a vast space unoccupied,
though by nature fruitful, commanded one of the gods to
take off his head, and to mix the blood with the earth; and

111 sons of god


from thence to form other men and animals, which should
be capable of bearing the air. Belus formed also the stars,
and the sun, and the moon, and the five planets. (Such,
according to Polyhistor Alexander, is the account which
Berossus gives in his first book.) (In the second book was
contained the history of the ten kings of the Chaldans,
and the periods of the continuance of each reign, which
consisted collectively of an hundred and twenty sari (shar),
or four hundred and thirty-two thousand years (120 by
3,600); reaching to the time of the Deluge.
Fragments of Chaldean History,
Berossus: Alexander Polyhistor

Berossuss early account is important as it verifies the fallen angel cor-


ruption of pre-adamic humanity as well as their rule upon the earth
previous to even the creation of modern-day humanity. Another
mention of extreme importance is Oannes as the bringer of knowl-
edge and civilization to the ancient pre-adamic peoples. Oannes, for
anybody that researches the story, was called the Lord of the Waves
by the Babylonians and is depicted as a partially amphibious being
with the torso and head of a man and lower portion representing
that of a fish with scales. This myth was the forerunner for the mer-
maid, siren, and merfolk legends.
Oannes is also Greek for the Akkadian Lord Ea, Gnostic
Demiurge Yaldaboath Saklas Samael, Christian Lucifer or Satan,
Targum Sammael, and Islamic Iblis, as all are just different names
for the same god of the first Annunaki civilization called Eridu, the
Sumerian Prince Ea, later Enki. Many cultures attribute the bringing
of higher civilization to a form of Enki or Oannes, the lightbringer
whom, according to legend, came in the guise of a fish, eagle, ser-
pent, or hybrid mix of these such as Quetzlcoatl, the plumed serpent.
The Sumerian texts speak of a fish/eagle suit the Annunaki wear
when exploring other worlds. Perhaps it was just such a suit that

zen garcia 112


gave them the ability to present themselves in one form or another
to various cultures and civilizations, or perhaps as the Bible and other
extra-biblical books suggest, Lucifer and his fallen angels possess the
ability to shape shift into any form, even that of an angel of light and
can assume appearance in any guise. It is my belief that all of these
various, seemingly unconnected embodiments are in fact the same
phenomena, and that Oannes, Quetzlcoatl, and Kulkulcan, among
others, all represent the same historical verification that Satan and
the fallen ones did long ago interdict themselves into the affairs of
humanity as the hybrid demigods worshiped of old.
There is a tribe from Mali, Africa, called the Dogon that still
worships Oannes in idol form. Called the Nommos, they claim the
olden gods descended to Earth in an ark thousands of years ago from
a planet that orbited another star in a then unknown binary star sys-
tem. The Nommos, according to legend, gave the Dogon knowledge
about Sirius B and even left them in possession of a 400-year-old
artifact that apparently depicts the Sirius configuration as a binary
star system, a fact discovered only a few years before anthropologists
recorded the Dogon stories. Would it surprise you to know that after
six months of spiritual initiation the Dogon spiritual leader, called
Hogon, appears publically, wearing a red fez much like the Shriners
of America and that the Fez is tied to the worship of these ancient
star gods? Would it surprise you to know that the popes hat, called
a mitre, is also representation of the fish cap worn by Oannes? The
popes hat is connected directly to the worship of Oannes, or whom
the Philistines and the Bible reference as Dagon. So why is the
Roman Catholic Church seemingly tied to the worship of ancient
pagan deities?

Then the lords of the Philistines gathered them together


for to offer a great sacrifice unto Dagon their god, and to
rejoice: for they said, Our god hath delivered Samson our
enemy into our hand. And when the people saw him, they
praised their god: for they said, Our god hath delivered

113 sons of god


into our hands our enemy, and the destroyer of our coun-
try, which slew many of us.
And it came to pass, when their hearts were merry, that
they said, Call for Samson, that he may make us sport.
And they called for Samson out of the prison house; and
he made them sport: and they set him between the pillars.
And Samson said unto the lad that held him by the hand,
Suffer me that I may feel the pillars whereupon the house
standeth, that I may lean upon them.
Now the house was full of men and women; and all
the lords of the Philistines were there; and there were
upon the roof about three thousand men and women, that
beheld while Samson made sport. And Samson called
unto the Lord, and said, O Lord GOD, remember me, I
pray thee, and strengthen me, I pray thee, only this once,
O God, that I may be at once avenged of the Philistines
for my two eyes. And Samson took hold of the two mid-
dle pillars upon which the house stood, and on which it
was borne up, of the one with his right hand, and of the
other with his left. And Samson said, Let me die with the
Philistines. And he bowed himself with all his might; and
the house fell upon the lords, and upon all the people that
were therein. So the dead which he slew at his death were
more than they which he slew in his life.
Judges 16:23-30

When the Philistines took the ark of God, they brought it


into the house of Dagon, and set it by Dagon. And when
they of Ashdod arose early on the morrow, behold, Dagon
was fallen upon his face to the earth before the ark of the
Lord. And they took Dagon, and set him in his place
again. And when they arose early on the morrow morn-
ing, behold, Dagon was fallen upon his face to the ground
before the ark of the Lord; and the head of Dagon and
both the palms of his hands were cut off upon the thresh-
old; only the stump of Dagon was left to him.

zen garcia 114


Therefore neither the priests of Dagon, nor any that
come into Dagons house, tread on the threshold of Dagon
in Ashdod unto this day. But the hand of the Lord was
heavy upon them of Ashdod, and he destroyed them, and
smote them with emerods, even Ashdod and the coasts
thereof. And when the men of Ashdod saw that it was
so, they said, The ark of the God of Israel shall not abide
with us: for his hand is sore upon us, and upon Dagon our
god. They sent therefore and gathered all the lords of the
Philistines unto them, and said, What shall we do with the
ark of the God of Israel? And they answered, Let the ark
of the God of Israel be carried about unto Gath. And they
carried the ark of the God of Israel about thither.
Samuel 5:2-7 (kjv)

And when they had stripped him, they took his head, and
his armour, and sent into the land of the Philistines round
about, to carry tidings unto their idols, and to the people.
And they put his armour in the house of their gods, and
fastened his head in the temple of Dagon.
Chronicles 10:10 (kjv)

Oannes is none other than Prometheus of Greek legend, or the


Lucifer of Masonic tradition that was the light bearer or bringer
of wisdom who, according to occultist lore, abandoned his first
estate in order to bring knowledge in the form of light to human-
ity locked away in darkness by a supposed cruel, uncaring tyrant
god. According to Masons, Lucifer only wanted to help humanity
by extending to us our own right to godhood and experience of the
lavish pleasures of life in the flesh. The Masons believe that Lucifer
sacrificed himself to bring humanity the possibilities of free will in
this temporal world. Those that embrace the Luciferian creed of do
as thou wilt, are they who would rather indulge in all grandiose self
pleasure than exist in an eternal world where they must adhere to
the commandment and law of a Creator of us all. They, like Lucifer,

115 sons of god


deny Christ as the Son of God and arbiter of future judgment, for
how can one truly be evil if one possesses any shred of faith or belief
in the eternal condemnation or the salvation of soul? And though
the Masons worship Lucifer as the liberator of free will, what they
wont tell you is that Lucifer as Satan was responsible for our collec-
tive fall as humanity and our current imprisonment within the flesh.
With the insight of Berossus, Mantheo, and other ancient his-
torians we can detail the fallen angels connection to the worship
of the ancient star gods in their various embodiments and to those
entities that were said to have delivered advanced knowledge to
various cultures early in their history of this planet. Many may still
doubt my assertion that the fallen ones inhabited this planet prior
to our creation, and yet ancient sites are being discovered in places
where no city, people, or civilization should have been in existence,
especially not one advanced beyond even modern day standards.
And even though modern-day science currently considers Sumer
as the oldest historical culture and civilization to have ever existed
upon the planet, they do not take into account pre-deluge history
or those cultures and civilizations that have become largely buried
by earth and sea. New evidence has come to light recently with the
discovery of a forgotten lost Atlantis-type city submerged off the
coast of Japan near Yonaguni, Jima.
Investigators cite the ancient city as being 5,000 years old and
date its destruction to an earthquake over 2,000 years ago. I believe
the site to be much older and part of those cultures, which existed
prior to the flood of Noahs day. I believe that this city, like the myth
of Atlantis, was part of previous judgments that took place on cit-
ies inhabited by the fallen ones and the creatures they brought into
existence prior to even the creation of modern humanity.
We know that the Lord has had to destroy the fallen angels in their
celestial and earthly habitations many times because of their insist-
ence upon acting as gods themselves and for specifically destroying

zen garcia 116


planets peoples and creatures. The planets in this solar system are
riddled with evidence of the Lords judgments against them.

Such was his glory that he governed the virtues of


heaven Satan was the master of all those who imitated
the Father, and his power descended from the sky to the
inferno and rose again from the inferno to the throne of
the invisible Father. And he observed the glory of Him
who transformed the skies. And he dreamed of placing his
seat on the clouds of heaven because he wanted to be like
the very high.
The Gospel of the Secret Supper

117 sons of god


The Celestial Battle
and End of the
First World Age

Scripture refers to a time when Lucifer refused to humble himself


before the dominion of Yahushuah and was cast from heaven, and
also about a time whenafter the creation of sixth-dayAdam
Lucifer refused to bow to humanity and the dominion of Adam
in Paradise. The Lord allows cycles to repeat even in our lives so
that those that watch vigilantly will know whats coming and not
be fated to repeat mistakes, recognizing patterns such as the warn-
ing of in the days of Noah. The first instance of Lucifers rebellion
occurred when Yahushuah, or Adam of Light, was unveiled to the
world. His revealing caused the separation of light and darkness,
and His dominion became the reason for Lucifers rage and envy.
Most have never heard of Adam of Light nor His association with
Yahushuah as being the original Adam; however, if the Book of the
Secrets of Enoch is correct and Lucifer was banished from the upper
heavens on the second day, the only thing that can tie all of these
stories together is that Lucifer refused to submit to the dominion of
our Lord, Adam of Light, and for this he was cast out of the upper
heavens. This separation of light and darkness is also the point
where he would challenge the Lord to the same death and incarna-

119
tion in the flesh to which the Lord sentenced Satan and his angels.
While there are not many passages detailing who Adam of Light is
and what role He is to play within the creation, one passage from On
the Origin of the World also correlates Yahushuah with being the first
created Adam, Adam of Light.

Now when Adam of Light conceived the wish to enter


his lighti.e., the eight heavenhe was unable to do so
because of the poverty that had mingled with his light.
Then he created for himself a vast eternal realm. And
within that eternal realm he created six eternal realms and
their adornments, six in number, that were seven times
better than the heavens of chaos and their adornments.
Now all these eternal realms and their adornments exist
within the infinity that is between the eighth heaven and
the chaos below it, being counted with the universe that
belongs to poverty. If you want to know the arrangement
of these, you will find it written in the Seventh Universe of
the Prophet Hieralias.
And before Adam of Light had withdrawn in the chaos,
the authorities saw him and laughed at the prime parent
because he had lied when he said, It is I who am God. No
one exists before me. When they came to him, they said,
Is this not the god who ruined our work? He answered
and said, Yes. If you do not want him to be able to ruin
our work, come let us create a man out of earth, according
to the image of our body and according to the likeness of
this being, to serve us; so that when he sees his likeness,
he might become enamored of it. No longer will he ruin
our work; rather, we shall make those who are born out of
the light our servants for all the duration of this eternal
realm Now these through the will <> The souls that
were going to enter the modeled forms of the authorities
were manifested to Sabaoth and his Christ. And regarding
these, the holy voice said, Multiply and improve! Be lord
over all creatures. And it is they who were taken captive,

zen garcia 120


according to their destinies, by the prime parent. And thus
they were shut into the prisons of the modelled forms until
the consummation of the age.
On the Origin of the World

In the passage come let us create a man out of the Earth, Yaldaboath
is speaking to the lower order of angels about the third creation of
Adam, Adam of dust, which came into being on the eighth day as
an agreement between the angels of both the lower and higher order.
The third creation of Adam is a very difficult topic to understand
and thats partially one of the reasons for my efforts in producing
this book. My hope is to detail the many creations of Adam and the
various world ages so that you can understand how and why each
came into being and how and why it led us to our current condition
as a spiritual being caught in a fallen state of physical flesh. I will
discuss in a later chapter the third creation of Adam, but suffice it
to say there are many texts that I will use to not only describe the
fall of humanity, but also the elevation of humanity once dust Adam
and Eve are recreated on the eighth day into flesh form. The Nag
Hammadi collection, the Kolbrin Bible, as well as many other texts
also gives insight into how humanity was lifted from their fallen
state to recognize that they were living among the fallen ones.
Remember in the book of Luke? The Lord says that He was wit-
ness to Satan falling as lightning from heaven. How could this be if
He was not Himself already with the Father? If one reads closely the
passage from John 1, one will see that the Father and the Son are
one, that He was with Him since before the beginning, that all things
were created through Him and by Him, and that nothing came into
existence that was not done through Him/Them. We have to under-
stand that Yahushuah, or who many know as Jesus Christ, has always
been with God the Father, and as Son He and the Father are one.
Our Lord has been with the Father since before the beginning and it
was in fact He, as the word and verbal expression of the Father, that

121 sons of god


brought all these things into being; not only that, but He as the light
was what brought the entirety of creation to visibility.
I know that its difficult for people to grasp this concept, yet
I think its important for people to at least ponder the incredible
nature of this thought. Because if one can grasp this simple concept
as laid out by John, one would know that never could theyor we as
creaturesever aspire to be Christ in the fullness of His glory. Even
as sons of God and children made in the image of the word as physi-
cal embodiment of the Father, we are still not the Christ and never
could aspire to that role. Christ is the only begotten of Yahweh God,
and it was only to Him that role as God in flesh was given, to die as
a sacrificial lamb for the sins of those whom had rebelled and fallen
prior to His taking on form to defeat death. Only Yahushuah would
fulfill this role, and at a date and time specific to fulfill the feasts and
prophecies of the Father.
Our Lord is the light of the universe, and we, like the angels,
should know to whom all praise worship, gratitude, and bless-
ings should be directed in servicing the grand monarchy of the
Morningstar administration. Please understand we can never aspire
to be the Christ in such a way that we equal His glory. Even when
we allow self to become a vessel of His will, it is He that works
through us that is the power, and yet even when He works through
us it is not us but he that is the Christ within us that accomplishes
miracles. This is what it means to be born again and filled with the
Holy Spirit, for we are to implement the laws and commandments
of the Lord in exampling to others.
Yahushuah, as the embodiment of Yahweh and the light that was
called forth that separated darkness from the upper heavens, was
the Adam to whom Lucifer refused servitude on the second day.
It was on that day also that he entertained the thought of exalting
himself above the throne and dominion of the Holy Trinity. For
these two incidences, he and those that sided with him were cast out
of the upper heavens. Later He would exact his revenge on the sec-

zen garcia 122


ond creation of Adam, Adam of Paradise, since he had no power or
authority to rebuke the glory or might of our Lord, Adam of Light.

And I said, Lord, before Satan fell, what was his glory
beside your Fathers? And he told me, Such was his glory
that he governed the virtues of heaven. As for me, I sat
next to my Father. Satan was the master of all those who
imitated the Father, and his power descended from the
sky to the inferno and rose again from the inferno to the
throne of the invisible Father. And he observed the glory
of Him who transformed the skies. And he dreamed of
placing his seat on the clouds of heaven because he wanted
to be like the very high
When he descended farther down, he found himself
in the presence of clouds weighing on the tidal waves of
the sea. He went on until he got to his ossop, which is the
principle of fire. After that he could not descend farther
because of the intense flame of the fire. Then Satan came
in from behind and filled his own heart with malice, and
reaching the angel of the air and the one who was above
the waters, he said to them, Everything belongs to me. If
you listen to me, I will place my seat on the clouds and I
shall be similar to the very high. I will withdraw the waters
of the upper firmament and assemble all the areas occu-
pied by the sea into one entity of vast seas. That done,
there will be no water on the face of the entire earth, and I
shall reign with you through the centuries of the centuries.
The Gospel of the Secret Supper

Yahushuah as Adam of Light was the image that the second Adam,
Adam of Paradise, was formed as on the sixth day. This creation of
humanity would be unique in that we would be endowed with the
Holy Spirit and infused with the breath of life that is Christ within
us. The Lord would utilize this spirit-filled being to not only bring
righteousness to the world but also judgment to those that were

123 sons of god


then ruling in deceit upon the lower earth. Sixth-day humanity was
made in the image of the Holy Trinity before falling from grace:

He answered and said unto them, He that soweth the good


seed is the Son of man; The field is the world; the good
seed are the children of the kingdom; but the tares are the
children of the wicked one; The enemy that sowed them is
the devil; the harvest is the end of the world; and the reap-
ers are the angels. As therefore the tares are gathered and
burned in the fire; so shall it be in the end of this world.
Matthew 13:36-40 (kjv)

Before Lucifer was to be cast from the upper heavens, the Lord
allowed him to tempt the resolve of all the angels; He wanted to see
which would be incited for rebellion and which would remain loyal
to His dominion and monarchy. While Lucifer was going to and fro
among the angels of the Lord, testing their allegiance, many were in
quandary as to whom they should serve. With war impending, sides
would have to be chosen carefully as the winner would rule supreme
over heavenly affairs.
Contrary to belief, Satan never had a chance to usurp the throne
of Yahweh or the dominion of Yahushuah, for how can a creature
ever rule supreme over its Creators? Such a thought is beyond com-
prehension, and yet Lucifers appeal was so great that he convinced
one third of the angels of every order to side with his rebellion. One
third was loyal to Yahweh and Yahushuah, yet one third wavered
in commitment as to whom to serveLucifer and the New World
Order or Yahweh and the Natural Order. This rebellion caused
Yahushuah to reconstitute a plan by which to redeem the angels of
the First World Age by giving them/us free will to incarnate into
flesh during the Second World Age. As sons of God and spirits
of the First World Age, we would be tried and tested through life
in mortal flesh where, as humans, we would learn about creation
through the experience of both good and evil. Lucifers persuasive

zen garcia 124


abilities incited those that followed him to attempt an overthrow of
Yahushuahs dominion. As war in heaven ensued, he and his hosts
fought against Michael and one third of the Cherubim angels, of
which Lucifer had once been. For his insurrection, he became head
of the Seraphim angels, which together were banished from the
realms above the six heavens.
Yahweh allowed the Lucifer rebellion to test the loyalty of all of
His angels as the one third (Ophanim) that wavered in choosing
sides would now be given chance again to prove allegiance and loy-
alty by incarnating into flesh. The one third (Seraphim) that affixed
themselves to Lucifer, believing the same lie that caused his own
downfall, that being the promise, desire of godhood, and selfish rule,
would have no part in salvation and at the end of days be eradicated
as if they had never been. The one third (Cherubim) that remained
loyal would be given special election and chance to volunteer service
in the flesh, incarnating for special purpose much like the Apostles
and John the Baptist. While not much has been written to clarify
this accounting, there is a quote from the First Book of Adam and
Eve that gives readers insight into this little known War in Heaven.

But now, O Adam, we will make known to you, what


came over us through him, before his fall from heaven. He
gathered together his hosts, and deceived them, promising
to give them a great kingdom, a divine nature; and other
promises he made them. His hosts believed that his word
was true, so they yielded to him, and renounced the glory
of God. He then sent for usaccording to the orders in
which we wereto come under his command, and to
accept his vain promise. But we would not, and we did not
take his advice. Then after he had fought with God, and
had dealt forwardly with Him, he gathered together his
hosts, and made war with us. And if it had not been for
Gods strength that was with us, we could not have pre-
vailed against him to hurl him from heaven. But when he
fell from among us, there was great joy in heaven, because

125 sons of god


of his going down from us. For if he had remained in
heaven, nothing, not even one angel would have remained
in it. But God in His mercy, drove him from among us
to this dark earth; for he had become darkness itself and
a worker of unrighteousness. And he has continued, O
Adam, to make war against you, until he tricked you and
made you come out of the garden, to this strange land,
where all these trials have come to you. And death, which
God brought to him, he has also brought to you, O Adam,
because you obeyed him, and trespassed against God.
Then all the angels rejoiced and praised God, and asked
Him not to destroy Adam this time, for his having sought
to enter the garden; but to bear with him until the fulfill-
ment of the promise; and to help him in this world until
he was free from Satans hand.
The First Book of Adam and Eve, 55

Cast out of the upper heavens, Lucifer as Satan (the adversary) was
banished with his hosts to wander the lower heavens in search of
worlds to destroy and kingdom to rule. From the second until the
sixth day, he and his rebel angels had free reign of the lower heavens,
and as the Sumerian tales of the Annunaki relate, could and pos-
sibly did explore the myriad planets and moons of this solar system,
establishing what are termed as waystations throughout. How far
and wide his exploration encompassed we may never know, and yet
daily it seems someone from NASA personnel, astronauts, or mem-
bers from other national alphabet agencies are leaking stories, pho-
tos, and even videos detailing the connection of the ancient star gods
to possible megalithic type structures and cities having been in exist-
ence upon not only our own moon and Mars but perhaps also other
planets and moons within this solar system. Having free roam of the
planets from the second until the sixth day, Satan and his hosts had
plenty of time to build such structures and to establish such cities.

zen garcia 126


Thou shalt not be joined with them in burial, because
thou hast destroyed thy land, and slain thy people:
the seed of evildoers shall never be renowned. Prepare
slaughter for his children for the iniquity of their fathers;
that they do not rise, nor possess the land, nor fill the face
of the world with cities. For I will rise up against them,
saith the Lord of hosts.
Isaiah 14:20-22 (kjv)

127 sons of god


Pre-Adamic Earth

In order for me to clarify whom the sixth-day, spirit-filled, breath of


life, hermaphroditic Adam was from the eighth-day, dual-natured,
fallen-dust Adam, I must explain the Genesis 2 pre-adamic crea-
tionas molded by the Elohimto establish how this story fits in
with the Three World Ages and three creations of Adam. Most do
not realize that the early chapters of Genesis 2 actually describe the
molding of a creature prior to the creation of modern humanity and
that one was molded by the Annunaki Elohim and the other formed
by the Holy Trinity.

And God said, Let us make man in our image, after our
likeness: and let them have dominion over the fish of
the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the cattle,
and over all the earth, and over every creeping thing that
creepeth upon the earth. So God created man in his own
image, in the image of God created he him; male and
female created he them. And God blessed them, and God
said unto them, Be fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the
earth, and subdue it: and have dominion over the fish of
the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over every living
thing that moveth upon the earth. And God said, Behold,
I have given you every herb bearing seed, which is upon
the face of all the earth, and every tree, in the which is the
fruit of a tree yielding seed; to you it shall be for meat. And
to every beast of the earth, and to every fowl of the air, and
to every thing that creepeth upon the earth, wherein there

129
is life, I have given every green herb for meat: and it was so.
And God saw every thing that he had made, and, behold,
it was very good. And the evening and the morning were
the sixth day.
Gemesis 2:26-31 (kjv)

If you look up the translation for God in the prior Genesis passages
one will find that the word God translates as plural Elohim, which
like sons of God stands for the sum total of angels in both the higher
and lower orders. God in these early passages actually represents the
angels of Godin this case the rebel angels that were cast out of
their first estate.
If one looks very closely at these particular passages, one will
notice a very delicate shift from Elohim (God) to Yahweh Elohim
(Lord God). This shift is very important in that it very subtly veils
fallen-angel involvement with the pre-adamic creature of Genesis
2. The Annunaki, as indicative of this passage, were involved in
the prior genetic manipulation of an ancestor of Cro-magnon
Neanderthal pre-adamic apeman already in existence here on the
planet. The Sumerian teachings also confirm that the Annunaki
had created what they term a primitive worker from this big-foot
type of creature.
This Genesis 2 account also verifies a division of capability in
that the Annunaki-molded creature was very different than the
sixth-day Adam created by Yahweh Elohim as what the Sumerian
teachings call the Civilized Man. The first molded creature did
not possess intelligence enough to farm the land or to shepherd
domesticated animals. This being was neither endowed with the
ability to speak nor to understand language. It was also vegetar-
ian, as it was the Annunaki giants that were the first to consume
flesh as carnivores on the planet. The destruction and recreation
of Tiamat, as referenced in the Kolbrin, is also implied within the
early Genesis account, and both shroud within them the destruc-
tion of those cities that were inhabited by the fallen ones and the

zen garcia 130


slave race they had molded prior to the Holy Trinity creating mod-
ern humanity in Genesis 2.
During the early part of earth history, both the fallen ones, as
well as their slave race, numbered few. Both groups were sustained
directly from the land and were easily nourished by the abun-
dance that nature provided. Once both groups began to multiply,
life became increasingly difficult for both groups. It is my conten-
tion that the Annunaki, though they have very long and seemingly
immortal life spans, are not eternal, immortal beings, especially in
their current state as Annunaki spirit men. I believe they are similar
in likeness to ourselves in that they also must eat, drink, sleep and
defecate just like the rest of us mere mortals. As such, they can be
killed, and do in fact die. This does not deter from their ability to,
like Legion, sustain self in seeming immortality, possessing body
after body through lifetime age and space of time to shrug off the
limitations of flesh and death.
We are told in the book of Enoch that after their deaths in the
flood, the children of Anak, the hybrid giant seedlinesbecause
they were not a natural creation and had no part in salvation
would be condemned by the Lord to wander the post-deluge Earth
as demonic entities, seeking bodies to possess for indwelling. It
would be through the bodies of others that the condemned would
again feed on the flesh and blood of humanity, as they had prior as
the embodiment of the mythological titans of old.
The fallen ones are inter-dimensional beings that can live in and
out of flesh. Even these seemingly immortal rebel angels will be
judged to die mortal deaths during the harvest, at the end of days,
with the coming separation of the wheat and the tares. They, like
evil, have been given only a short time to exist, and once that time is
up, all those that are associated with evil shall be wiped from exist-
ence as if they had never been. My contention that the fallen angels
inhabit flesh and human form is also backed up by Ezekiel 28 and
Isaiah 14, which are both very familiar passages written in reference

131 sons of god


to Lucifer and his station prior to his fall. These quotes also verify
that Satan is now a man, holding the form of a man, possessing the
shape of a man, and that the Lord will judge him to die the death of
a man by burning him inside out in the presence of kings and rulers.

How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer, son of the


morning! how art thou cut down to the ground, which
didst weaken the nations! For thou hast said in thine heart,
I will ascend into heaven, I will exalt my throne above the
stars of God: I will sit also upon the mount of the con-
gregation, in the sides of the north: I will ascend above
the heights of the clouds; I will be like the most High.
Yet thou shalt be brought down to hell, to the sides of
the pit. They that see thee shall narrowly look upon thee,
and consider thee, saying, Is this the man that made the
earth to tremble, that did shake kingdoms; That made the
world as a wilderness, and destroyed the cities thereof; that
opened not the house of his prisoners? All the kings of the
nations, even all of them, lie in glory, every one in his own
house. But thou art cast out of thy grave like an abomi-
nable branch, and as the raiment of those that are slain,
thrust through with a sword, that go down to the stones
of the pit; as a carcase trodden under feet. Thou shalt not
be joined with them in burial, because thou hast destroyed
thy land, and slain thy people: the seed of evildoers shall
never be renowned. Prepare slaughter for his children for
the iniquity of their fathers; that they do not rise, nor pos-
sess the land, nor fill the face of the world with cities. For I
will rise up against them, saith the Lord of hosts
Isaiah 14:12-22 (kjv)

Son of man, say unto the prince of Tyrus, Thus saith the
Lord GOD; Because thine heart is lifted up, and thou hast
said, I am a God, I sit in the seat of God, in the midst of
the seas; yet thou art a man, and not God, though thou
set thine heart as the heart of God: Behold, thou art wiser
than Daniel; there is no secret that they can hide from

zen garcia 132


thee: With thy wisdom and with thine understanding
thou hast gotten thee riches, and hast gotten gold and
silver into thy treasures: By thy great wisdom and by thy
traffick hast thou increased thy riches, and thine heart is
lifted up because of thy riches: Therefore thus saith the
Lord GOD; Because thou hast set thine heart as the heart
of God; Behold, therefore I will bring strangers upon thee,
the terrible of the nations: and they shall draw their swords
against the beauty of thy wisdom, and they shall defile thy
brightness. They shall bring thee down to the pit, and thou
shalt die the deaths of them that are slain in the midst of
the seas. Wilt thou yet say before him that slayeth thee,
I am God? but thou shalt be a man, and no God, in the
hand of him that slayeth thee. Thou shalt die the deaths
of the uncircumcised by the hand of strangers: for I have
spoken it, saith the Lord GOD.
Ezekiel 28:2-10 (kjv)

It wasnt until the Lord breathed the spirit of life into sixth-day
Adam that humanity was endowed with the ability to speak and
recognize language. Its important to understand that the counter-
feit creation, the primitive worker molded by the fallen angels, had
no capacity to speak or understand language and was very limited in
ability to provide service to the Annunaki as a slave race. Both the
Sumerian as well as biblical accounts verify this little known and
seldom understood truth.
Pre-adamic man was already present on the planet with dino-
saurs and the dragons that were the Nachash of Genesis 3; this is the
era when the Annunaki giants ruled upon the earth. The reason the
Annunaki worked to mold this early prototype apelike human into
being was to alter a slave needed to mine the gold necessary for them
to protect their own planets atmosphere. It is said in the Sumerian
texts that Niburu was undergoing ecological disaster and that wars
and planetary cataclysms had over time weakened and punctured
holes through the protective layers of their atmosphere. The inabil-

133 sons of god


ity to deflect harmful rays affected Niburu each time it encroaches
upon the sun or what they call Apsu in orbital rotation. Niburu
would undergo massive upheaval in the form of volcanic, seismic,
and tectonic activity, which would threaten the inhabitants of that
world. Depletion of their ozone allowed too much sunlight to bom-
bard the surface, making life there a dangerously precarious affair.
A solution was found in the form of gold as the Annunaki sci-
entists determined a plan of action to attempt repair of the breach.
They would crush massive amounts of gold into powder form and
then suspend it into the atmosphere to see if it would help refract
the suns rays. Gold would be the reason why Earth was targeted for
exploration and occupation. It was known since the war in heaven
between Niburu and Tiamat, that this planet was riddled with an
abundance of gold. Gold is limited in quantity on Niburu. Alalu,
the Niburian king that first decided on coming to the Earth, did
so because he knew from their ancient accounts that this planet
contained veins that lie exposed where the Annunki would be able
to gain easy access to an abundance of it. After Alalus pioneering
voyage, other Annunaki explorers were sent here en mass to begin
operations to locate and secure the large quantities of gold needed to
repair their own atmosphere.
Finding the work difficult and tedious, a council of Annunaki
elders approved a plan to alter the DNA of the pre-adamic being
already in existence upon the Earth. Once successfully fashioned,
it would be utilized as the labor force needed to eradicate the gold
required for transport to Niburu. The council determined it better to
jump the gun on evolution even though universally forbidden, rather
than risk mutiny from their fellow Annunaki.
The being whose material they used initially in modification was
described as a seven to eight-foot-tall, large, humanoid type fully
covered in red hair that wore no clothing, had no language, drank,
ate, and dwelt among the other creatures of the Earth. They knew
that they would break a universal rule on mixing seed and jumping

zen garcia 134


the gun on the evolution of creatures on other planets, and yet they
did so anyway, citing the need to secure gold and heal the ozone
of Niburu.

The Primitive Worker


A solution is possible! Enki was saying:
Let us create a Lulu, a Primitive Worker,
the hardship work to take over,
Let the Being the toil of the Anunnaki carry on his back!
Astounded were the besieged leaders,
speechless indeed they were.

Whoever heard of a Being afresh created,


a worker who the Anunnakis work can do?
They summoned Ninmah,
one who of healing and succor was much knowing.
Enkis words to her they repeated:
Whoever of such a thing heard? they her asked,
The task is unheard of! she to Enki said.
All beings from a seed have descended,
One being from another over aeons did develop,
none from nothing ever came!
How right you are my sister! Enki said, smiling.
A secret of the Abzu let me to you all reveal:
The Being that we need, it already exists!

All that we have to do is


put on it the mark of our essence,
Thereby a Lulu, a Primitive Worker, shall be created!
So did Enki to them say.
Let us hereby a decision make,
a blessing to my plan give:
To create a Primitive Worker,
by the mark of our essence to fashion him!

To create a Primitive Worker,


by the mark of our essence to fashion him!

135 sons of god


So was Enki to the leaders saying.
The Being that we need, it already exists!
Thus did Enki to them a secret of the Abzu reveal.
With astonishment did the other leaders Enkis words hear;
by the words they were fascinated.
Creatures in the Abzu there are, Enki was saying,
that walk erect on two legs,
Their forelegs they use as arms,
with hands they are provided.
Among the animals of the steppe they live.
They know not dressing in garments,
They eat plants with their mouths,
they drink water from lake and ditch.

Shaggy with hair is their whole body,


their head hair is like a lions;
With gazelles they jostle,
with teeming creatures in the waters they delight!
The leaders to Enkis words with amazement listened.
No creature like that has ever in the Edin been seen!
Enlil, disbelieving, said.
Aeons ago, on Nibiru, our predecessors like that might
have been! Ninmah was saying.
It is a Being, not a creature!
Ninmah was saying. To behold it must be a thrill!
To the House of Life Enki led them;
in strong cages there were some of the beings.
At the sight of Enki and the others they jumped up,
with fists on the cage bars they were beating.
They were grunting and snorting;
no words were they speaking.
Male and female they are!
Enki was saying; malehoods and femalehoods they have,
Like us, from Nibiru coming, they are procreating.
Ningishzidda, my son,
their Fashioning Essence has tested;
Akin to ours it is, like two serpents it is entwined;

zen garcia 136


When their with our life essence shall be combined,
our mark upon them shall be,
A Primitive Worker shall be created!
Our commands will he understand,
Our tools he will handle,
the toil in the excavations he shall perform;
To the Anunnaki in the Abzu relief shall come!
So was Enki with enthusiasm saying,
with excitement his words came forth.
Enlil at the words was hesitating:
The matter is one of great importance!
On our planet, slavery has long ago been abolished,
tools are the slaves, not other beings!

A new creature, beforehand nonexisting,


you wish to bring into being;
Creation in the hands of the
Father of All Beginning alone is held!
So was Enlil in opposing saying; stern were his words.
Enki to his brother responded: Not slaves,
but helpers is my plan!
The Being already exists! Ninmah was saying.
To give more ability is the plan!
Not a new creature, but one existing more in our image
made! Enki with persuasion said,
With little change it can be achieved,
only a drop of our essence is needed!

A grave matter it is, it is not to my liking! Enlil was saying.


Against the rules of from planet to planet journeying it is,
By the rules of to Earth coming it was forbidden.
To obtain gold was our purpose, to replace the Father of
All Beginning it was not!

After Enlil thus had spoken,


Ninmah was the one to respond:
My brother! Ninmah to Enlil was saying,

137 sons of god


With wisdom and understanding
has the Father of All Beginning us endowed,
To what purpose have we so been perfected,
else of it utmost use to make?
With wisdom and understanding
has the Creator of All our life essence filled,
To whatever using of it we capable are,
is it not that for which we have been destined?
So was Ninmah words to her brother Enlil directing.
With that which in our essence was granted,
tools and chariots we have perfected,
Mountains with terror weapons we shattered,
skies with gold we are healing!
So was Ninurta to his birth-giving mother saying.
Let us with wisdom new tools fashion,
not new beings create,
Let by new equipments, not by slave beings,
the toil be relieved!
Where to our understanding does us lead,
to that we have been destined!
So was Ningishzidda saying,
with Enki and Ninmah he in agreement was.
What knowledge we possess, its use cannot be prevented!
Ningishzidda was saying.
Destiny indeed cannot be altered,
from the Beginning to the End it has been determined!
To them Enlil was thus saying. Destiny it is, or Fate it is,
That to this planet us has brought,
to gold from the waters foil,
To put Anunnaki heroes to excavating toil,
to a Primitive Worker create to be planning?
That, my kinfolk, is the question!
Thus, with graveness, Enlil was saying.
Is it Destiny, is it Fate; That is what deciding requires,
Is it from the Beginning ordained,
or by us for choosing?
To put the matter before Anu they decided;

zen garcia 138


Anu before the council the matter presented.
The elders, the savants, the commanders were consulted.
Long and bitter the discussions were,
of Life and Death, Fate and Destiny words were spoken.
Can there be another way the gold to obtain?
Survival is in danger!

If gold must be obtained,


let the Being be fashioned!
the council decided.
Let Anu forsake the rules of planetary journeys,
let Nibiru be saved!
From Anus palace the decision to Earth was beamed;
it Enki delighted.
Let Ninmah my helper be,
of such matters understanding she has!
Thus was Enki saying.
At Ninmah with a longing he was gazing.
Let it so be! Ninmah was saving. Let it so be! Enlil did say.
By Ennugi was the decision
to the Anunnaki in the Abzu announced:
Until the Being is achieved,
to the toil willingly you must return! he said.
There was disappointment; rebellion there was not;
to the toil the Anunnaki returned.
In the House of Life, in the Abzu,
how to fashion the Being
Enki to Ninmah was explaining.
To a place among the trees Ninmah he directed,
a place of cages it was.
In the cages there were odd creatures,
their likes in the wild no one had seen:
Foreparts of one kind they had,
hindparts of another creature they possessed;
Creatures of two kinds by their essences combined
to Ninmah Enki was showing!

139 sons of god


To the House of Life they returned, to a clean place with
brightness shining they led her.
In the clean place Ningishzidda to Ninmah
the life-essence secrets was explaining,
How the essence from two kinds combined can be,
he to her was showing.
The creatures in the tree cages are too odd,
monstrous they are! Ninmah was saying.
Indeed so! Enki responded. To attain perfection,
for that you are needed!
How the essences to combine, how much of this,
how much of that to put together,
In which womb conception to begin,
in which womb should the birth be given?

For that your succor and healing understanding are needed;


The understanding of one who gave birth,
who a mother is, is required!
A smile on the face of Ninmah was;
the two daughters that by Enki she mothered
she well remembered.
With Ningishzidda she surveyed the sacred formulas that
on MEs were secreted,
How this and that were done of him she inquired.
The creatures in the tree cages she examined,
the two-legged creatures she contemplated.
By a male inseminating
a female are the essences transmitted,
The two entwined strands separate
and combine an offspring to fashion.
Let a male Anunnaki a two-legged female impregnate,
let a combination offspring be born!
Thus did Ninmah say.
That we have tried, with failures it resulted!
to her Enki responded.
There was no conceiving, there was no birth!
Lost Book of Enki

zen garcia 140


I know this is a difficult teaching to understand, yet it is vital for
understanding what exactly is being discussed in the early chapters
of Genesis. This story is important when laying the foundations for
the rest of the creations of Adam, for otherwise one would be hard-
pressed to make sense of all that is going on within the Genesis
account. The Annunaki corruption of the earth is alluded to in all
cultures of the world. What is described in Genesis 6 is verified by
literally hundreds, if not thousands, of texts and oral traditions. The
Sumerian account of genetic experimentation is reminiscent of the
rumors of nightmarish Dr. Moreau type creatures being molded cur-
rently in deep underground bases. This information, though lunatic
fringe, matches a Dead Sea Scroll text called the Book of Giants.

1Q23 Frag. 9 + 14 + 15 2 [] they knew the secrets of


[] 3 [si]n was great in the earth [] 4 [] and
they killed many [ . . ] 5 [they begat] giants []
4Q531 Frag. 3 2 [everything that the] earth pro-
duced [] [] the great fish [] 14 [] the sky with
all that grew [] 15 [fruit of ] the earth and all kinds
of grain and all the trees [] 16 [] beasts and rep-
tiles[al]l creeping things of the earth and they observed
all [] |8 [eve]ry harsh deed and [] utterance []
l9 [] male and female, and among humans []
1Q23 Frag. 1 + 6 [two hundred] 2 donkeys, two
hundred asses, two hundredrams of the] 3 flock, two
hundred goats, two hundred [beast of the] 4 field from
every animal, from every [bird] 5 [] for miscegena-
tion []
4Q531 Frag. 2 [] they defiled [] 2 [they
begot] giants and monsters [] 3 [] they begot, and,
behold, all [the earth was corrupted] 4 [] with its
blood and by the hand of [] 5 [giants] which did not
suffice for them and [] 6 [] and they were seeking to
devour many [] 7 [] 8 [] the monsters attacked it.
4Q532 Col. 2 Frags. 16 2 [] flesh [] 3al [l]
monsters [] will be [] 4 [] they would arise []

141 sons of god


lacking in true knowledge [] because [] 5 [] the
earth [grew corrupt] mighty [] 6 [] they were
considering [] 7 [] from the angels upon [] 8
[] in the end it will perish and die [] 9 [] they
caused great corruption in the [earth] [this did not]
suffice to [] they will be []
The Book of Giants

The creation of myriads of hybrid monstrosities by the fallen ones


prompted our Lord to bring judgment to their works and efforts.
This would also be a determining factor for the Lord to create His
own creature made in His own image to inherit the bounty of the
Earth. Righteousness would descend to this fallen world through
those who would incarnate into flesh as the children of modern sixth
day Adam and Eve. Lucifer would plot his revenge against Adam
of Light by deceiving them. His seduction of Eve would cause all
three to transgress the law concerning the tree of death and conse-
quentially Adam and Eve were cast to the lowest region of physical
creation, the lower visible Earth, to whence Satan and his angels had
already been banished. Here the Second World Age, the age of flesh,
would begin with the serpents line and birth of Cain.

After the clothing of fig-leaves they put on clothing of


skins, and that is the skin of which our bodies are made,
being of the family of man, and it is a clothing of pain. The
entrance of Adam into Paradise was at the third hour. He
and Eve passed through great power in three hours, they
were naked for three hours, and in the ninth hour they
went out from Paradise, unwillingly, with much grief, great
weeping, mourning and sighing.
KITAB AL-MAGALL

zen garcia 142


Adam of Paradise
and the Second
World Age

[Friday]. On the sixth day I commanded my wisdom to create man


from seven consistencies: one, his flesh from the earth; two, his blood
from the dew; three, his eyes from the sun; four, his bones from
stone; five, his intelligence from the swiftness of the angels and from
cloud; six, his veins and his hair from the grass of the earth; seven,
his soul from my breath and from the wind. And I gave him seven
natures: to the flesh hearing, the eyes for sight, to the soul smell, the
veins for touch, the blood for taste, the bones for endurance, to the
intelligence sweetness (sc. enjoyment). I conceived a cunning saying
to say, I created man from invisible and from visible nature, of both
are his death and life and image, he knows speech like some created
thing, small in greatness and again great in smallness, and I placed
him on earth, a second angel, honourable, great and glorious, and I
appointed him as ruler to rule on earth and to have my wisdom, and
there was none like him of earth of all my existing creatures.
And I appointed him a name, from the four compo-
nent parts, from east, from west, from south, from north,
and I appointed for him four special stars, and I called
his name Adam, and showed him the two ways, the light
and the darkness, and I told him: This is good, and that

143
bad, that I should learn whether he has love towards me,
or hatred, that it be clear which in his race love me. For I
have seen his nature, but he has not seen his own nature,
therefore through not seeing he will sin worse, and I said
After sin what is there but death? And I put sleep into
him and he fell asleep. And I took from him a rib, and
created him a wife, that death should come to him by his
wife, and I took his last word and called her name mother,
that is to say, Eva.
The Book of the Secrets of Enoch, 30

The Sixth-Day, Second-Creation Adam of Paradise


After thousands of years where the fallen angels ruled upon this
planet, the Lord would institute a plan to not only condemn the
Elohim angels that rebelled against Him but also grant a chance
for redemption to the angels that sat on the fence during the First
World Age. With the creation of this new being, the Lord would
allow light to descend into darkness for the elevation of this world.
The lower Earth would become a middle road battleground for
the incarnation of spirit and soul. Thats when Yahushuah as the
Word and embodiment of the Father took dust from the earth and
breathed the spirit of life into it so that humanity was no longer
just a carnal soul, but was now imbued with the spirit which could
inherit eternal life.
This creation was the sixth-day, modern, hermaphroditic Adam
and Eve before she was split off from him creating separate male and
female genders. Adam, in his bright natured form, was much like the
angels that serve our Lord. Most do not realize that He was blessed
with an even greater capacity for understanding and comprehension
of the mysteries than the fallen angels themselves. Another thing that
most do not realize is that Adam was created in the presence of both
the higher angels of heaven and the lower angels of Earth before he
was separated and taken to paradise under the protection of the Lord.

zen garcia 144


When the lower angels witnessed this image, it was then that they
instituted a plan to lure that heavenly being to the Earth. What they
did not realize, however, was that they were following preparations
as laid out by the intent of the Most High, and once they created
this modeled form, the Lord would vitalize it with His own breath,
thereby elevating above them the creature they were attempting to
mold as prisoners for the angels of light. When initially created,
sixth-day Adam was an immortal being that did not eat drink, sleep,
or defecate. He also was endowed with twin sight in that he was able
to perceive both the spiritual and physical worlds. After Adam was
taken to the protection of paradise, the Lord separated Eve from
him. Even after the separation, both were spiritual, angelic beings
not yet impoverished by the physical limitations of bodily senses.
Once Eve is split off from Adam, she becomes the vehicle by
which Satan, as the serpent, tempts her to eat from the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil. This treachery would lead to the con-
dition of death, loss of their bright natures, and fall into flesh form
where they would then fulfill all the prophecies of Genesis 3 as fore-
told by the Lord when He banished them from Paradise and placed
them upon the wilderness of the earth with all of the other fallen
angels. This transformation would take place on the eighth day and
come about as an agreement between the higher and lower angels.

On the sixth day God created from the earth all the beasts,
and animals and insects and creeping reptiles. This day is
Friday, and on it God created Adam of dust, and formed
Eve from his rib. On the seventh day God had completed
all creation, and He called it Sabbath. God had created
Adam in the third hour of Friday the sixth day. Iblis had
laid claim to Godhead which had entered him in the sec-
ond hour of that day, and God had hurled him down from
heaven to earth. Before God the Lord created Adam, rest
fell upon all the powers; and God said, Come, let us cre-
ate a Man in our likeness and form and image. When

145 sons of god


the Angels heard this saying from the Lord they became
frightened and much terrified, and they said to one
another, What is this great wonder which we hear, and
how is it possible that the form of our God and Creator
can appear to us? Then all the Angels looked towards the
right hand of the Lord, which was stretched out above all
creation, and all of it was in His right hand. Then they
looked towards the right hand of the Lord, and it took
from all the earth a little handful of dust, and from all
the waters a drop of water, and from the air a soul and
a spirit, and from fire the force of heat, and it became in
the grasp of the Lord portions of the four elements, heat
and cold, moisture and drought. Verily God, the glorious
and strong, created Adam from these four weak elements,
which have no power, that all creatures created from them
might hear and obey him: dust, that man might obey him;
water, that all that is born of it and in it might obey him;
air, that it might be possible for him to breathe it and to
feel its breezes, and that its birds might obey him; and fire,
that the heat of forces created from it should be a powerful
helper to his sense.
The reason why God, may His holy names be sancti-
fied! created Adam with His holy hand in His form and
image was that he should receive wisdom and speech and
animal motion, and for the knowledge concerning things.
When the glorious and illustrious Angels saw one like
Him in Adam, they were affrighted. The wondrous glory
upon his face terrified them, his form appeared shining
with divine light greater than the light of the sun, and his
body was bright and brilliant like the well-known stars
in the crystal. When the figure of Adam drew itself up,
he leapt standing; he was in the centre of the earth, he
stretched out his right hand and his left hand and put his
feet in order upon Golgotha, which is the place where was
put the wood (cross) of our Saviour Jesus the Christ. The
Angels and the Powers heard the voice of God, may He
be glorified and exalted! saying to Adam, O Adam, I have

zen garcia 146


made thee king and priest and prophet and ruler and chief
and governor over all creatures that are made. All creation
shall obey thee and follow thy voice. Under thy grasp they
shall be.
To thee alone I have given this power; I have placed
thee in possession of all that I have created. When the
Angels heard this saying from the Lord they redoubled
honour and respect to Adam. When the Devil saw the gift
that was given to Adam from the Lord, he envied him
from that day and the schismatic from God set his mind
in cunning towards him to seduce him by his boldness
and his curse; and when he denied the grace of the Lord
towards him, he became shameless and warlike. God, may
His names be sanctified! deprived the Devil of the robe of
praise and dignity and called his name Devil, he is a rebel
against God, and Satan, because he opposes himself to the
ways of the Lord, and Iblis, because He took his dignity
from him.
While Adam was listening to the speech of his Lord
to him, and standing upon the place of Golgotha, all the
creatures being gathered together that they might hear the
conversation of God with him, lo! a cloud of light car-
ried him and went with him to Paradise and the choirs of
Angels sang before him, the cherubim among them bless-
ing and the seraphim crying Holy! until Adam came into
Paradise. He entered it at the third hour on Friday, and the
Lord, to Him be praise! gave him the commandment, and
warned him against disobedience to it. Then the Lord, to
Him be praise! threw upon Adam a form of sleep, and he
slept a sweet sleep in Paradise. And God took a rib from
his left side, and from it He created Eve. When he awoke
and saw Eve he rejoiced over her and lived with her, and
she was in the pleasant garden of Paradise. God clothed
them with glory and splendour. They outvied one another
in the glory with which they were clothed, and the Lord
crowned them for marriage, the Angels congratulated
them, and there was joy there such as never has been the

147 sons of god


like and never will be till the day in which the people at
the right hand shall hear the glorious voice from the Lord.
Adam and Eve remained in Paradise for three hours.
The site of Paradise was high up in the air, its ground
was heavenly, raised above all mountains and hills, that
were thirty spans high, that is fifteen cubits, according to
the cubit of the Holy Ghost. This Paradise stretches round
from the east by a wall from the hollow to the southern
place of darkness where the cursed Prince was thrown, it
is the place of sorrows. Eden is a fountain of God lying
eastwards, to a height of eight degrees of the rising of the
sun, and this is the mercy of God on which the children
of men put their trust, that they shall have a Saviour from
thence, because God, may He be exalted and glorified!
knew in His foreknowledge what the Devil would do to
Adam. Eden is the Church of God, and the Paradise in
which is the altar of rest, and the length of life which God
has prepared for all the saints.
Then God planted the tree of life in the middle
of Paradise and it was the form of the cross which was
stretched upon it, and it was the tree of life and salva-
tion. Satan remained in his envy to Adam and Eve for the
favour which the Lord shewed them, and he contrived to
enter into the serpent, which was the most beautiful of the
animals, and its nature was above the nature of the camel.
He carried it till he went with it in the air to the lower
parts of Paradise. The reason for Iblis the cursed hiding
himself in the serpent was his ugliness, for when he was
deprived of his honour he got into the acme of ugliness,
till none of the creatures could have borne the sight of
him uncovered, and if Eve had seen him unveiled in the
serpent, when she spoke to him, she would have run away
from him, and neither cunning nor deceit would have
availed him with her; but he contrived to hide himself in
the serpent, the cunning creature, to teach the birds with
round tongues the speech of men in Greek and such like
But the cursed Devil, when he entered the serpent, came

zen garcia 148


towards Eve, when she was alone in Paradise away from
Adam, and called her by her name.
She turned to him, and looked at her likeness behind
a veil, and he talked to her, and she talked to him, and he
led her astray by his speech, for womans nature is weak,
and she trusts in every word, and he lectured her about the
forbidden tree in obedience to her desire, and described
to her the goodness of its taste, and that when she should
eat of it she should become a god; and she longed for what
the cursed one made her long for, and she would not hear
from the Lord, may His names be sanctified! what He had
commanded Adam about the tree.
She hastened eagerly towards it, and seized some of its
fruit in her mouth. Then she called Adam, and he hastened
to her, and she gave him of the fruit, telling him that if he
ate of it he would become a god. He listened to her advice
because he should become a god as she said. When he
and she ate the deadly fruit they were bereft of their glory,
and their splendour was taken from them, and they were
stripped of the light with which they had been clothed.
When they looked at themselves, they were naked of the
grace which they had worn, and their shame was manifest
to them; they made to themselves aprons of fig-leaves, and
covered themselves therewith, and they were in great sad-
ness for three hours. They did not manage to continue in
the grace and the power with which the Lord had endued
them before their rebellion for three hours, till it was taken
from them and they were made to slip and fall down at the
time of sunset on that day, and they received the sentence
of God in punishment. After the clothing of fig-leaves
they put on clothing of skins, and that is the skin of which
our bodies are made, being of the family of man, and it is a
clothing of pain. The entrance of Adam into Paradise was
at the third hour. He and Eve passed through great power
in three hours, they were naked for three hours, and in the
ninth hour they went out from Paradise, unwillingly, with
much grief, great weeping, mourning and sighing.

149 sons of god


They slept towards the East of it near the altar. When
they awoke from their sleep, God spoke to Adam and
comforted him, saying to him, blessed be His names! O
Adam! do not grieve, for I will restore thee to thine inher-
itance, out of which thy rebellion has brought thee. Know
that because of my love to thee I have cursed the earth, and
I will not have pity upon it, on account of thy sin. I have
cursed also the serpent by whom thou hast been led astray,
and I have made its feet go within its belly. I have made
dust its food. I have not cursed thee. I have decreed against
Eve that she shall be at thy service. Know certainly that
when thou hast accomplished the time that I have decreed
for thee to dwell outside, in the accursed land, for thy
transgression of my commandment, I will send my dear
Son; He will come down to the earth, He will be clothed
with a body from a Virgin of thy race, named Mary. I will
purify her and choose her, and bring her into power gen-
eration after generation until the time that the Son comes
down from Heaven. In that time shall be the beginning of
thy salvation and restoration to thine inheritance.
KITAB AL-MAGALL

Please notice that in this very important quote that Adam is crowned
King in sight of the fallen ones before he is taken to paradise to be
under the protection of the Lord and his angels. Unbeknownst to
Satan, Adam, or Eve, the Lord was establishing plans to not only
rectify the Nephilim corruption of the earth, but also redeem fallen
humanity, as He knew that Adam would fall and the devil would
tempt them. It was in paradise and not on the Earth that male and
female genders came into being. After Adam names the creatures,
the Lord fashionedfrom and out of Adamhis twin soul Eve.
It was in this garden of the Lord that Satan would have to enter in
the guise of a serpent in order to tempt the Lords newly created
and highest creatures. His beguiling caused Eve to desire the same
promise that caused Lucifers initial fall from grace and banish-

zen garcia 150


ment from the upper heavensthe desire to be as gods themselves.
This desire caused Adam and Eve to lose their bright natures or
light vestures since their bodies had initially been clothed in light
and immortality.
This eating of the fruit of the tree of the knowledge of good and
evil would result in their incarnation into flesh upon the lower Earth
where they would be living among the devils and demons already
banished there. This text even mentions that the result of eating of
that forbidden fruit was in fact incarnation into the flesh.

[Friday]. On the sixth day I commanded my wisdom to


create man from seven consistencies: one, his flesh from
the earth; two, his blood from the dew; three, his eyes from
the sun; four, his bones from stone; five, his intelligence
from the swiftness of the angels and from cloud; six, his
veins and his hair from the grass of the earth; seven, his
soul from my breath and from the wind. And I gave him
seven natures: to the flesh hearing, the eyes for sight, to
the soul smell, the veins for touch, the blood for taste, the
bones for endurance, to the intelligence sweetness (sc.
enjoyment). I conceived a cunning saying to say, I created
man from invisible and from visible nature, of both are his
death and life and image, he knows speech like some cre-
ated thing, small in greatness and again great in smallness,
and I placed him on earth, a second angel, honourable,
great and glorious, and I appointed him as ruler to rule
on earth and to have my wisdom, and there was none like
him of earth of all my existing creatures. And I appointed
him a name, from the four component parts, from east,
from west, from south, from north, and I appointed for
him four special stars, and I called his name Adam, and
showed him the two ways, the light and the darkness, and
I told him: This is good, and that bad, that I should learn
whether he has love towards me, or hatred, that it be clear
which in his race love me. For I have seen his nature, but
he has not seen his own nature, therefore through not see-

151 sons of god


ing he will sin worse, and I said After sin what is there but
death? 16 And I put sleep into him and he fell asleep. And
I took from him a rib, and created him a wife, that death
should come to him by his wife, and I took his last word
and called her name mother, that is to say, Eva.
The Book of the Secrets of Enoch, 30

ADAM has life on earth, and I created a garden in Eden


in the east, that he should observe the testament and keep
the command. I made the heavens open to him, that he
should see the angels singing the song of victory, and the
gloomless light. And he was continuously in paradise, and
the devil understood that I wanted to create another world,
because Adam was lord on earth, to rule and control it. The
devil is the evil spirit of the lower places, as a fugitive he
made Sotona from the heavens as his name was Satanail,
thus he became different from the angels, but his nature
did not change his intelligence as far as his understanding
of righteous and sinful things. And he understood his con-
demnation and the sin which he had sinned before, there-
fore he conceived thought against Adam, in such form he
entered and seduced Eva, but did not touch Adam. But I
cursed ignorance, but what I had blessed previously, those
I did not curse, I cursed not man, nor the earth, nor other
creatures, but mans evil fruit, and his works.
The Book of the Secrets of Enoch, 31:1-6

In this chapter I endeavor to remind you of our intended providence,


for Yahweh desired to establish us as part of the heavenly hosts that
serve Him all moments of being. It is my hope to piece together for
you a forgotten story, a hidden tale recapturing the reasons behind
the fall of Lucifer and its consequence for Adam of Paradise, Eve,
and eventual humanity. It is my assertion that the real reason for
humanitys fall into flesh was to set the stage for the final and ulti-
mate battle between Yahweh/Yahushuah and Lucifer. Unless one
understands this singular aspect of the story, one will not compre-

zen garcia 152


hend where we are in the ancient war between the two bloodlines
(Genesis 3:15). When Yahushuah created the sixth-day, second-
creation of Adam, the soul-endowed Adam, that Adam was given
dominion over the third heaven, or Paradise. This creation of Adam
had no idea as to why Lucifer hated him or that war once ensued in
heaven. He only knew that Satan, for whatever reason, was adamant
in persecuting him and Eve. Both were in an innocent state, having
never experienced evil, so the idea that an angel of the Lord could
actually hate them just never crossed their minds.
The Latin version of the Life of Adam and Eve retells this story,
describing in detail the innocent ignorance of both as they directly
question Satan as to why he was so egregiously persecuting them.
Neither knew why Satan deplored them, and neither ever conceived
the thought that an angel would or could ever plot evil against them.

And she cried out and said: Woe unto thee, thou devil.
Why dost thou attack us for no cause? What hast thou
to do with us? What have we done to thee? for thou pur-
suest us with craft? Or why doth thy malice assail us? Have
we taken away thy glory and caused thee to be without
honour? Why dost thou harry us, thou enemy (and perse-
cute us) to the death in wickedness and envy? And with a
heavy sigh, the devil spake: O Adam! all my hostility, envy,
and sorrow is for thee, since it is for thee that I have been
expelled from my glory, which I possessed in the heav-
ens in the midst of the angels and for thee was I cast out
in the earth. Adam answered, What dost thou tell me?
What have I done to thee or what is my fault against thee?
Seeing that thou hast received no harm or injury from us,
why dost thou pursue us?
The devil replied, Adam, what dost thou tell me? It is
for thy sake that I have been hurled from that place. When
thou wast formed. I was hurled out of the presence of God
and banished from the company of the angels. When God
blew into thee the breath of life and thy face and likeness

153 sons of god


was made in the image of God, Michael also brought thee
and made (us) worship thee in the sight of God; and God
the Lord spake: Here is Adam. I have made thee in our
image and likeness.
And Michael went out and called all the angels saying:
Worship the image of God as the Lord God hath com-
manded. And Michael himself worshipped first; then he
called me and said: Worship the image of God the Lord.
And I answered, I have no (need) to worship Adam. And
since Michael kept urging me to worship, I said to him,
Why dost thou urge me?
I will not worship an inferior and younger being (than
I). I am his senior in the Creation, before he was made
was I already made. It is his duty to worship me. When
the angels, who were under me, heard this, they refused to
worship him. And Michael saith, Worship the image of
God, but if thou wilt not worship him, the Lord God will
be wrath with thee. And I said, If He be wrath with me,
I will set my seat above the stars of heaven and will be like
the Highest.
And God the Lord was wrath with me and banished
me and my angels from our glory; and on thy account were
we expelled from our abodes into this world and hurled
on the earth. And straightway we were overcome with
grief, since we had been spoiled of so great glory. And we
were grieved when we saw thee in such joy and luxury.
And with guile I cheated thy wife and caused thee to be
expelled through her (doing) from thy joy and luxury, as I
have been driven out of my glory.
The Vitae of Adam and Eve, 11:2-16:4

The sixth-day second creation of Adam, wrought in immortal inno-


cence, knew not the experience of hate or evil and never fathomed
the idea that Satan could or would loathe him. He was created
purewithout failand did not understand the loneliness of his
situation until, naming all of the other creatures, he recognized none

zen garcia 154


like him. This recognition became cause for the Lord to separate
from him a female helpmate. The separation of the feminine from
the masculine was relegated a separate embodiment, that of Eve,
and once the androgynous nature was divided Eve became the focus
of Lucifers plot to cause the fall of humanity. It wasnt until the
feminine aspect had been separated from Adams initial androgy-
nous nature that separate female and male forms came into being.
Yahweh forewarned Adam to not eat of or touch of the tree of
the knowledge of good and evil lest he die. He did so because He
knew Satan would tempt both Adam and Eve to fall. Adam, not
understanding the importance of this message, did not admonish
Eve with the same warning once split off from him.

And of Your goodwill, O Lord, You made us both with


bodies of a bright nature, and You made us two, one; and
You gave us Your grace, and filled us with praises of the
Holy Spirit; that we should be neither hungry nor thirsty,
nor know what sorrow is, nor yet faintness of heart; neither
suffering, fasting nor weariness.
The First Book of Adam and Eve, 34

If the woman had not separated from the man, she should
not die with the man. His separation became the begin-
ning of death. Because of this, Christ came to repair the
separation, which was from the beginning, and again unite
the two, and to give life to those who died as a result of the
separation, and unite them.
The Gospel of Phillip

When Eve was still with Adam, death did not exist. When
she was separated from him, death came into being. If he
enters again and attains his former self, death will be no more.
The Gospel of Phillip

155 sons of god


Satan believed that if he could cause the fall of Adam and Eve that
their children would be born under his authority and within the
dominion of the lower Earth. What Satan did not realize is that the
Lord would only allow him a certain allotment of time in which to
attempt to fulfill this plan. He would be granted dominion of the
lower Earth for only a short time7,000 years, seventy weeks, or
seventy generations. Once humanity began incarnating into flesh,
Lucifer would seek to thwart the birth of the Messiah, who born
of woman and through the line of Adamwould bring salvation
and forgiveness to the children of Earth, extending grace even unto
the Gentile nations who serve Satan as the children of Cain. Satan
sought to prevent the birth of Yahushuah and incited Herod to deci-
mate all male children up to the age of two born into the Hebrew
nation. He thought that if he could kill the Savior, salvation would
never be established, and judgment would never arrive. Satan under-
stood that once the Second World Age began, Yahushuah, the Son,
would be born of the flesh and be crucified, defeat death, restore
hope, and deliver to paradise all of the souls of the righteous who,
until then, had been collected in Sheol. His incarnation would occur
5,500 years after Adam and Eve were banished from Paradise.
Yahushuah would then establish the church to instill the world
with the laws, commandments, and ordinances of the Father as
written in the Torah. Once Yahushuah incarnated in the flesh, there
would be but a short time until His second coming and end of the
Second World Age. He would bring eternal rest and everlasting life
to the righteous and death, destruction, and permanent disgrace to
Satan and his fallen angels.
Many people ask why Yahweh would even allow evil to exist for
any length of time. The reason that the Father did not slay Lucifer
immediately and bring the entire creation back into unity and order
is precisely because the Lord also loved Lucifer and hoped that he,
too, would repent of his wickedness. The rebel angels and fallen
watchers are sons of God, too, though they cannot desist from evil.

zen garcia 156


It wasnt until the fallen watchers joined the rebel angels and inter-
dicted themselves into the affairs of humanity, took earthly wives,
and sired an unnatural race of cannibalistic giants into the world
that the Lord decided on forgiving their trespass no more. Both of
these groups are now only tolerated until judgment rewards them
according to their deeds.

And yet he could not curse Satan, nor injure him by word,
because he had no authority over him, neither did he take
to doing so with words from his mouth. Therefore the
angel tolerated him, without saying one bad word, until the
Word of God came who said to Satan, Go away from here;
once before you deceived My servants, and this time you
seek to destroy them. Were it not for My mercy I would
have destroyed you and your hosts from off the earth. But
I have had patience with you, until the end of the world.
First Book of Adam and Eve, 43

As the Father loved Adam, so does Yahweh love Lucifer and hoped
he would repent of his evil intention. Lucifer had once been honored
by the Lord as his first created Cherubim archangel; he was given
high authority previous to his fall. Vanity and power clouded his
sense, corrupted his heart, and lead him to be cast out of heaven. His
reign upon the Earth would only be for a short time as he, Death,
and the false prophet themselves would suffer ultimate demise for
engendering the downfall of humanity.

Sedrach said to him, It was by your will that Adam was


deceived, my Master. You commanded your angels to wor-
ship Adam, but he who was first among the angels diso-
beyed your order and did not worship him; and so you
banished him, because he transgressed your command-
ment and did not come forth (to worship) the creations
of your hands. If you loved man, why did you not kill the
devil, the artificer of all iniquity?

157 sons of god


God saith to him: Be it known unto thee that I ordered
all things to be placable to him: I gave him understanding
and made him the heir of heaven and earth, and I sub-
jected all things to him, and every living thing flees from
him and from before his face: but he, having received of
mine, became alien, adulterous, and sinful: tell me, what
father, having given his son his portion, when he takes his
substance and leaves his father and goes away and becomes
an alien and serves an alien, when the father sees that the
son has deserted him, does not darken his heart, and does
not the father go and take his substance and banish him
from his glory because he deserted his father? And how
have I, the wonderful and jealous God, given him every-
thing, and he having received these things has become an
adulterer and a sinner?
Apocalypse of Sedrach 5-6

Yahweh would use the fall of humanity as the scenario necessary to


test the allegiance and loyalties of all of His angels, as most would be
forced to incarnate into flesh bodies for what would be the Second
World Age.

ADAM has life on earth, and I created a garden in Eden


in the east, that he should observe the testament and keep
the command. I made the heavens open to him, that he
should see the angels singing the song of victory, and the
gloomless light. And he was continuously in paradise, and
the devil understood that I wanted to create another world,
because Adam was lord on earth, to rule and control it.
The devil is the evil spirit of the lower places, as a fugi-
tive he made Sotona from the heavens as his name was
Satanail, thus he became different from the angels, but his
nature did not change his intelligence as far as his under-
standing of righteous and sinful things. And he understood
his condemnation and the sin which he had sinned before,
therefore he conceived thought against Adam, in such form

zen garcia 158


he entered and seduced Eva, but did not touch Adam. But
I cursed ignorance, but what I had blessed previously, those
I did not curse, I cursed not man, nor the earth, nor other
creatures, but mans evil fruit, and his works.
The Book of the Secrets of Enoch, 31:1-6

It was part of the Lords plan to allow for the seduction of Eve and
the consequential fall of humanity, as all would now be forced to
incarnate into flesh and through free will determine their lot in
judgment. The benefactors of salvation will have to prove through
life and being that they/we are worthy of salvation and to be the
inheritors of those positions abandoned by the rebel and watcher
angels that held not their first estate.

For I knew you would sin and transgress, and come out
into this land. Yet I wouldnt force you, nor be heard over
you, nor shut up; nor doom you through your fall; nor
through your coming out from light into darkness; nor yet
through your coming from the garden into this land.
For I made you of the light; and I willed to bring out
children of light from you and like to you. But you did not
keep My commandment one day; until I had finished the
creation and blessed everything in it. Then, concerning the
tree, I commanded you not to eat of it. Yet I knew that
Satan, who deceived himself, would also deceive you. So I
made known to you by means of the tree, not to come near
him. And I told you not to eat of the fruit thereof, nor to
taste of it, nor yet to sit under it, nor to yield to it.
Had I not been and spoken to you, O Adam, concern-
ing the tree, and had I left you without a commandment,
and you had sinnedit would have been an offence on
My part, for not having given you any order; you would
turn around and blame Me for it. But I commanded you,
and warned you, and you fell. So that My creatures cannot
blame Me; but the blame rests on them alone.
First Book of Adam and Eve, 13:13-19

159 sons of god


When the sixth-day second Adam was given dominion over
Paradise, Satan was asked to bow before this Adam much like he
was brought before Yahushuah and asked to honor His dominion.
The Lord would test Satan this time to see whether he and his hosts
would serve as ministering spirits to humanity or not. Like before,
He againin pride refused, and instead of serving the Lords
highest creatures decided to plot against them. He had already been
exiled to the lower heavens and wanted Adam and Eve to join him
on the fallen Earth. In tempting her to eat of the forbidden fruit,
Lucifer caused both to lose their immortal light vestures. For this
he was cursed by the Lord, stripped of his heavenly apparel, and
transformed into the likeness of an alien-dragon-reptilian-looking
being. The subsequent fall of Adam and Eve resulted in humanitys
loss of immortality and beginning of the Second World Age, the age
of flesh. During this 7,000 year cycle we would incarnate as flesh
as fallen angels and learn through the knowledge of good and evil
just what a world would look like without the sovereign rule of our
Father Yahweh and His Son, Yahushuah Savior Messiah. During
this age all would be allowed to determine for self just what focus is
important in pursuing the experience of duality in this world.

And when the prince of the lower order of angels saw what
great majesty had been given unto Adam, he was jealous
of him from that day, and he did not wish to worship him.
And he said unto his hosts, Ye shall not worship him, and
ye shall not praise him with the angels. It is meet that ye
should worship me, because I am fire and spirit; and not
that I should worship a thing of dust, which hath been
fashioned of fine dust.
And the Rebel meditating these things would not ren-
der obedience to God, and of his own free will he asserted
his independence and separated himself from God. But
he wasswept away out of heaven and fell, and the fall of
himself and of all his company from heaven took place on
the Stn because he turned aside [from the right way],

zen garcia 160


and Shd because he was cast out, and Daiw because
he lost the apparel of his glory. And behold, from that
time until the present day, he and all his hosts have been
stripped of their apparel, and they go naked and have hor-
rible faces. And when Stn was cast out from heaven,
Adam was raised up so that he might ascend to Paradise
in a chariot of fire.
The Cave of Treasures

The whole reason the Second World Age and 7,000 years of satanic
rule upon the wilderness of the lower visible Earth came into being
was to specifically accommodate the rebellion of Lucifer and decep-
tion of Adam and Eve. This world of duality would specifically serve
as proving grounds for the First World Age spirits, who would now
incarnate into the flesh and, being given free will, seal their fate by
choosing to serve either good or evil. Those rebel angels exiled from
heaven during the First World Age were stripped of their beauti-
ful, bright natures and heavenly countenance, andlike Lucifer
transformed into serpent, reptilian, dragon, alien-like beings. They
are forms of darkness though they still have power to shape-shift
and can assume the likeness of even an angel of light. The watchers
that descended during the age of Jared were human spirit beings
with supernatural attraction and heavenly form, which the daugh-
ters of Cain found irresistible.

Then the angel went from Adam and seized Satan at the
opening of the cave, and stripped him of the pretense he
had assumed, and brought him in his own hideous form
to Adam and Eve; who were afraid of him when they saw
him. 14 And the angel said to Adam, This hideous form
has been his ever since God made him fall from heaven.
He could not have come near you in it; he therefore trans-
formed himself into an angel of light.
The First Book of Adam and Eve, Ch. 28:13-14

161 sons of god


Then God sent His Word unto Adam, saying, Adam, that
figure is the one that promised thee the Godhead, and
majesty; he is not favourably disposed towards thee; but
shows himself to thee at one time in the form of a woman;
another moment, in the likeness of an angel; on another
occasions, in the similitude of a serpent; and at another
time, in the semblance of a god; but he does all that only
to destroy thy soul.
The Second Book of Adam and Eve, 3:15-16

Woe to you and your house, for the greatest of evils has
befallen the race of The Children of God and it is defiled.
The heritage of Kadamhapa is lost. The fetid flow defiling
the woman results from the incompatible intermingling,
but it is not all, for sicknesses and diseases are also generat-
ing from the ferments of the impure implantation.
Kolbrin Bible

zen garcia 162


Forbidden Fruit

Many find the Genesis 3 tale of humanitys fall difficult to under-


stand. Most believe that eating of the tree of the knowledge of good
and evil was nothing more than a piece of fruit. Others believe that
the fruit represents something deeper, more seductively connota-
tive, than what most people are willing to admit. Was the forbidden
fruit even a fruit at all, and what were the two trees in the garden?
Could the two trees be representative of Yahushuah (Tree of Life)
and Lucifer (Tree of knowledge of good and evil)? Maybe through
the tale of the forbidden fruit the Lord was preserving truth for
this time and disguising in parable form the true accounting of
what happened in Paradise from those who were simply incapable
of discernment.
Its my contention that the fruit, the two trees, and even the gar-
den may hold multiple meanings and, as such, can be construed in a
variety of ways. My personal take on the story is that Genesis 3 sym-
bolically represents the loss of immortality and the bright natures
that the Lord had adorned and clothed Adam, Eve, and even the
rebel angels with prior to their fall. Called a vesture of light, eating
of the forbidden fruit led to the loss of this light state of being, fall
from grace, and banishment to a region whereby they would fulfill
the prophecies put forth by the Lord in chapter three of Genesis,
dealing with life in the flesh. The curse of the tree is the curse of tak-
ing on flesh form; loss of their bright nature would lead them into
flesh incarnation, and it would be in the flesh that they would be

163
deceived into performing an act of sexual lust, that also representa-
tive of the eating of the forbidden fruit, would justify their fall from
grace and banishment from the kingdom.
Deciphering the story this way also helps one explain why it was
that He specifically told Eve that she would, after eating of the fruit
from this certain tree, now conceive a child when prior she had nei-
ther understanding of nor thought for sexual interaction. The eat-
ing of the forbidden fruit, in my opinion, veils not only the loss of
immortality but also the seduction of Eve and experience of carnal-
ity, which led to the birth of Cain as the firstborn son of the devil.
For those that are not aware of my previous work where I expound
upon these ideas, please check out my fourth book, Lucifer, Father of
Cain, for details on the premise of this notion.
I surmise that, based on the sum total of scripture, that the Tree
of the Knowledge of Good and Evil was not only associated with
Lucifer but also a certain vine that Lucifer had planted in the Lords
paradise. A little known Dead Sea manuscript called the Genesis
Apocryphon relates the tale of a drowned, post-flood world and
describes Noahs disembark from the ark to take what would be his
first steps upon a renewed Earth. The land was smitten in disar-
ray as roots, herbs, seedlings, and remnant vines were everywhere
disheveled and uprooted upon the ground. Noah first built an altar
to the Lord in honor of his familys deliverance, then goes about
replanting what he could find in hopes that it would replenish itself
in natural abundance and seasonal growth. When he came across the
grape vine, Noah recognized it as the tree by which Adam fell from
grace. Hesitant to replant the vine, Noah admonishes the Lord in
prayer for guidance as he had great respect for its ability to cause
folly in humans and did not want to replant something that would
cause later repercussions for him and his family.
Did the vine really have some role to play in Adam and Eves
loss of immortality and fall from grace? And if it did have a part to
play, what role was specific to the fall, and how did Lucifer utilize it

zen garcia 164


to make them susceptible to punishment and banishment from the
kingdom? Those are the questions that plagued my mind initially
when I came across these particular passages as they are also associ-
ated with another story that most have never heard about, which I
will bring forth soon in this chapter.
If the vine had a part to play in causing Adam and Eves ban-
ishment from Paradise, Noah was adamant to not incur the Lords
wrath by replanting it for the folly of future generations. He wanted
to be careful not to make the same mistakes as his previous ancestors
and so prayed about it before proceeding forward. The Lord then
answered him and told him that, whereas the vine had once been a
condemnation to humanity, it would now serve as a blessing.

And I said, I pray thee show me which is the tree which


led Adam astray. And the angel said to me, It is the vine,
which the angel Sammael planted, whereat the Lord God
was angry, and He cursed him and his plant, while also
on this account He did not permit Adam to touch it, and
therefore the devil being envious deceived him through his
vine. And I Baruch said, Since also the vine has been the
cause of such great evil, and is under judgment of the curse
of God, and was the destruction of the first created, how is
it now so useful? And the angel said, Thou askest aright.
When God caused the deluge upon earth, and destroyed
all flesh, and four hundred and nine thousand giants, and
the water rose fifteen cubits above the highest mountains,
then the water entered into paradise and destroyed every
flower; but it removed wholly without the bounds the
shoot of the vine and cast it outside. And when the earth
appeared out of the water, and Noah came out of the ark,
he began to plant of the plants which he found.
But he found also the shoot of the vine; and he took
it, and was reasoning in himself, What then is it? And I
came and spake to him the things concerning it. And he
said, Shall I plant it, or what shall I do? Since Adam was
destroyed because of it, let me not also meet with the anger

165 sons of god


of God because of it. And saying these things he prayed
that God would reveal to him what he should do con-
cerning it. And when he had completed the prayer which
lasted forty days, and having besought many things and
wept, he said: Lord, I entreat thee to reveal to me what
I shall do concerning this plant. But God sent his angel
Sarasael, and said to him, Arise, Noah, and plant the shoot
of the vine, for thus saith the Lord: Its bitterness shall
be changed into sweetness, and its curse shall become a
blessing, and that which is produced from it shall become
the blood of God; and as through it the human race
obtained condemnation, so again through Jesus Christ the
Immanuel will they receive in Him the upward calling,
and the entry into paradise.
Know therefore, O Baruch, that as Adam through this
very tree obtained condemnation, and was divested of the
glory of God, so also the men who now drink insatiably
the wine which is begotten of it, transgress worse than
Adam, and are far from the glory of God, and are surren-
dering themselves to the eternal fire. For (no) good comes
through it. For those who drink it to surfeit do these
things: neither does a brother pity his brother, nor a father
his son, nor children their parents, but from the drinking
of wine come all evils, such as murders, adulteries, fornica-
tions, perjuries, thefts, and such like. And nothing good is
established by it.
Baruch 3:8-17

The correlation between the vine and the tree of the knowledge of
good and evil has also been cited by the highly prized, protected, and
only recently revealed manuscript called the Kolbrin Bible, released
May 31, 2006. This text also details the events leading to the fall of
Adam and Eve and what role the vine played in that transgression.
The story begins with Eve, being in attendance at a moon festival,
when a concoction brewed from the grapes of this vine was passed
about in a chalice among the assembly of worshipers gathered there

zen garcia 166


for ritual. The potion was so intoxicating that those who drank of it
lost consciousness, only to wake up hours later. Once revived, those
that had partook in the ritual become keenly aware of awkward
aches and pains, which they associated to a violation, which had
occurred to them while unconscious. The sensations they felt were
a sign that the abominable thing had been done to them, meaning
that they must have endured rape by some entity or spirit unknown
to them. Confused, Eve left the moon festival and returned home,
where she enticed Adam to also swill some remnants of this bever-
age. Adam declined until Eve was able to use her womanly wiles to
implore him to drink. She then drank the rest and again succumbed
to the stupor induced by the concoction.
When they awake, they realize that their bodies had been violated
in a sexual manner, as both experienced pains unlike any theyve ever
known prior. The tale of Maeva and Dadam seems to allude to, as
the tale of Baruch, some role played by the vine in the fall of human-
ity and rape of Eve. Perhaps the Tree of the Knowledge of Good and
Evil is symbolic of both the vine and Lucifer. While many may still
deny that the eating of the forbidden fruit had any hidden sexual
connotation, the following story seems to verify that a sexual act
was partially to blame for the fall and banishment of humanity from
paradise. Intoxication could have lead to their loss of consciousness,
and loss of consciousness could have left both Adam and Eve sus-
ceptible to spiritual violation from what we are not told, but based
on myriad scriptures we can infer it was Satan and his minions. This
story also seems to confirm that Cain was not a child of Adams but
a consequence of the rape that Eve endured while under the influ-
ence of this vine.

About the land of The Children of God was the waste-


land where Yoslings, called The Children of Zumat, which
means They Who Inherit Death, dwelt. Amongst these,
Namtenigal, the wily hunter, was the most wise and cun-
ning; he alone was unafraid of The Children of God and

167 sons of god


he alone dared enter the Gardenland. In the days when
Estartha was teaching, Namtenigal often came to hear her
words and The Children of God were not displeased, for
teaching the wild men about them was a duty with which
they had been charged. Namtenigal, therefore, partici-
pated in their rites but could not partake of the elixir from
the Gwinduiva, because this was forbidden. While it gave
health and strength to The Children of God, safeguarding
them from the sicknesses of the Yoslings, if given to others
it caused a wasting away. It was also altogether forbidden
for any of The Children of God to mate with the Yoslings,
for this was deemed to be the most unforgivable of sins.
Now, the wily one learned much from Estartha and in the
fullness of time brought his own son to her and he became
as her son, living in her house and forsaking the ways of his
people. Estartha called him Lewid the Lightbringer, for it
was her intention that he should be taught the ways of
those who walked in light, that he might in time enlighten
his own people.
Lewid grew up tall and handsome, he was quick to
learn and became wise. He was also a man of the chase,
strong and enduring, a hunter of renown. But there were
times when the call of his people was strong, then he
would go out furtively into the night to indulge in their
dark rituals. Thus he became knowledgeable in the ways of
the flesh and in the carnal indulgences of the body.
Dadam became a servant of the Sacred Enclosure
where the misty veil between the realms could be pen-
etrated, for all those having the blood of Aruah had twin-
sight, an ability to see wraiths and sithfolk, ansis and spir-
itbeings, all the things of the Otherworld, not clearly but
as through a veil.
Beside the place called Gisar was a pleasant parkland
with trees of every kind and a stream, also thickets of flow-
ering bushes and all manner of plants growing lushly. It
was the custom of Maeva to wander there in the sunshine
and Lewid also went there; so it came about that they met

zen garcia 168


among the trees. Maeva knew the man but had shunned
him in the past, now she saw he was handsome, possessed
of many attractions, so her foot was stayed and she did not
run away.
As the days passed they dallied longer together and
Lewid talked of things Maeva had not heard before. She
felt a stirring in her blood but did not respond or heed his
temptations, because of the things which were forbidden.
So Lewid went to the Moonmother, wise woman of the
Yoslings, and telling of his desires beseeched her to help
him. The Moonmother gave him two apples containing a
vile substance which they had drawn through their stalks;
this Lewid gave to Maeva who then became helpless in
his hands. They met again after this, for Maeva became
enamoured towards Lewid, but it happened that she
became ill with a strange sickness and was afraid. Then
Dadam became ill and Lewid also, and Lewid said to the
woman, You must obtain the pure essences from within
the Sacred Enclosure, and Setina, the Moonmother, will
prepare an elixir which will cure us. This he said because
none of his kind had ever been able to obtain the Sacred
Substances, though they had always coveted what had
been denied them. Now, because of her frailty, the woman
was pliable in his hands and Lewid seized the opportunity.
To achieve his ends Lewid gave Maeva a potion which had
been prepared by the Moonmother and she administered
this to Dadam and those with him, by guile and deceit, so
that they fell asleep. While they slept Maeva stole from
the Sacred Substances and took them to Lewid who gave
them to the Moonmother, and she made a brew. Part of
this was given to Maeva and the rest was drunk by the
Yoslings, from their awful ankital during their night rites.
When the morning came they were all smitten with griev-
ous pains, and before the sun set that day all the Yoslings
were stricken with a sickness such as they had not known
before.

169 sons of god


Maeva took what had been given to her and finding
Dadam laid low in his bed gave him a draught from her
vessel, though she had to use womanly wiles to get him
to drink it. She drank the remainder and they both slept.
But when they awoke in the morning both were suffering
pains and this was something they had not known before.
Dadam said to the woman, What have you done, for what
has happened to us cannot be unless the things which are
forbidden have been done. The woman replied, Lord, I
was tempted and I fell, I have done that which is forbid-
den and unforgivable. Dadam said, I am bound by duty to
do certain things, but first let us go into the Gisar to the
place called Bethkelcris, where I will seek enlightenment.
So they went there together and stood before the shrine
beneath the Tree of Wisdom.
There they were filled with an inflowing vision, seeing
themselves as they were and as they should have been, and
they were ashamed. He because he had not followed the
proper path of a man and she because of her falsity. There,
in the reflecting mist, the contamination of the woman
was revealed, and the mans heart shriveled within him like
a flower licked by flame.
Then they saw a great Spiritbeing materializing in
the reflecting mist and he said to them, Woe to you and
your house, for the greatest of evils has befallen the race
of The Children of God and it is defiled. The heritage
of Kadamhapa is lost. The fetid flow defiling the woman
results from the incompatible intermingling, but it is not
all, for sicknesses and diseases are also generating from the
ferments of the impure implantation. (Maeva was preg-
nant with Cain.)
Dadam said, The fault is with the woman, wherefore
should I suffer? The Spiritbeing replied, Because you two
are now as one the conkerworms of disease and sickness
strike both equally, but you shall not again defile this place.
Henceforth, the misty veil becomes an impenetrable bar-
rier severing our two realms from each other, so they can

zen garcia 170


no longer be easily spanned. Between us there will now be
no means of communication.
Kolbrin

The Lord warned Adam to avoid the tree of the knowledge of good
and evil and to not eat or drink anything sacrificed unto idols. This
beverage was created during a full moon festival, which honored
pagan gods and made those who drank of it susceptible to demonic
influence. This beverage may have caused both Adam and Eve to
pass out, leaving their bodies exposed to the carnal advances of what-
ever forces frequented those pagan moon festivals. The story does
not inform us as to who took advantage of them while they were
intoxicated and while there is no certainty as to who was responsible
for their sexual violation, we can infer from other stories that it was
Satan and his rebel angels. One of the most intriguing aspects of the
Kolbrin revelation is the allusion that Eve was impregnated by an
impure seed as a result of being violated by some unnatural force. This
violation resulted in her pregnancy with Cain.
I have been asked by many of my radio listeners as to whether
I believe that the fruit, which caused Adam and Eve to fall, was
imbued with any psychedelic or psychotropic properties character-
istic of certain plants, especially those utilized by Native shamans
in opening and accessing spiritual worlds. The fruit that caused
the spiritual fall of sixth-day Adam and Eve was spiritual in nature
in that it affected their immortality, stripping them of their bright
natures, and causing their fall from grace. This fruit was not an
earthly fruit.
The text from the Nag Hammadi codices, as well as the story
of Maeva and Dadam from the Kolbrin Bible, does allude to the
visionary capacity of the second fruit eaten by Adam and Eve after
their fall and transformation to flesh. This fruit did heighten their
consciousness, granting them access to knowledge that made them
realize situation, story, and circumstance. What the initial fruit was

171 sons of god


that caused the fall to Earth, we cannot yet conclude; however, we
do know that it resulted in their opening up and tapping into experi-
ences they were not yet ready for, the consequences for which led to
life within human flesh.
In my opinion, the second fruit eaten on the eighth dayafter
Adam and Eve assume flesh formhas a better chance of being a
type a teacher or power plant. A fruit of this nature could indeed
expand consciousness, which the texts say made them aware of their
fallen state, and that they were living among devils and demons bent
on persecuting them and their progeny. While this scenario seems
a possibility, I do not believe a fruit is necessary or required for the
Lord to open His creatures minds to whatever information He
would have them know.
I do believe that there is a transcendent component to the ritual-
ized techniques utilized by native medicine peoples initiated into
their spiritual practices. However, my concern is what portals they
open and what kind of ancestor spirits are being invited in to possess
the participants of such ritual. The Father warns our Hebraic ances-
tors of having involvement with divination, familiar spirits, enchant-
ments, herbs, roots, or ritual that could open one up to demonic
influence. The fallen angels have, since and before the inception
of modern humanity on this planet, sought to lead astray cultures
and peoples pursuing secrets and doctrines that could lead them
into depravity, judgment, and condemnation. Thus the necessity of
adherence to the commandments.
The fetid flow defiling the woman results from the incompati-
ble intermingling, but it is not all, for sicknesses and diseases are also
generating from the ferments of the impure implantation (Kolbrin).
Cain was not a child of Adam but the son of Samael, the angel
of death, which is another name for Satan, who was also blamed
for planting the vine. The Kebra Nagast, an ancient Ethiopic Holy
Book, details Adams lineage from Seth to Christ, excluding both
Cain and Abel from Adams genealogy. The reason both are left out

zen garcia 172


of Adams genealogy is because Cain was not a child of Adams but
of Samael, Satan, the angel of death. Abel was excluded because he
was killed by his brother Cain, and bore no progeny to continue his
seed. One quote, which ties Cain to Lucifer undeniably and which
confirms 1 John 3:12, is a recently discovered passage referenced
from the Nag Hammadi codices, which says this:

He who has been created is beautiful, but you would <not>


find his sons noble creations. If he were not created, but
begotten, you would find that his seed was noble. But now
he was created (and) he begot. What nobility is this? First,
adultery came into being, afterward murder. And he was
begotten in adultery, for he was the child of the Serpent.
So he became a murderer, just like his father, and he killed
his brother. Indeed, every act of sexual intercourse which
has occurred between those unlike one another is adultery.
The Gospel of Philip

Notice first the reference to he whom was created. This created one
is Lucifer and describes his being a direct creation of the Creator
when He brought forth the angels. Then it says that if he were not
created, but begotten (born of woman), that his children might have
been noble because they would have been natural creatures born of
the procreative processes innate within all those that are the seed of
woman. The next line is the giveaway for those with eyes to see. It
says that the one that was created begot; this created one is Lucifer
who became Satan the adversary. He begot when he seduced Eve
and impregnated her with Cain. Cains birth was the consequence
of adultery, which then led to the murder of Abel by Cain, the
wicked one of Lucifer. This often-overlooked passage also confirms
Matthew 13, which says, He who sows the good seed is the Son
of Man. The field is the world, the good seeds are the sons of the
kingdom, but the tares are the sons of the wicked one. The enemy
who sowed them is the devil, the harvest is the end of the age, and

173 sons of god


the reapers are the angels. I will later cover thoroughly and in more
detail the many scriptures I have found that also verify this account-
ing. However, before moving on, I will touch upon Genesis 4:1, the
verse many reference to discredit this possibility.
When the Hebrew people were taken into exile by the
Babylonians, they remained there for seventy years and, being assim-
ilated into their culture, lost touch with their original teachings and
language. As they learned new languages, necessity required they
translate their holy books into two different languages of the time,
Palestinian and Aramaic. These translations, called Targums, were
read side by side with the original Hebrew Torah in the synagogues
for those who no longer understood Hebrew. Careful study of these
first ce language translations reveals a far different interpretation
for Genesis as related by the 1611 King James Version of the Bible.
The older versions of the Biblical Pentateuch include exclu-
sions to Genesis 3, 4, and 5 that seem to clarify that Cain truly
was a child of Satan, the devil. Another thing of interest within the
Targums is that the serpent that seduced Eve was called Sammael.
Sammael is one of the names that the Gnostics used for the blind
god Yaldaboath, whom many people teach is Yahweh of the Old
Testament. The assertion that Yahweh is Yaldaboath of the codices
is absolutely wrong and I believe presented in this way so as to dis-
credit the Gnostic texts and prevent any serious research of them.
I ask you please to study everything with an open mind and to not
trust any humans interpretation on what they think something says
or is supposed to mean. Study everything as one would the Old and
New Testament and take it before the Lord in discernment; He is
and always will be final authority for all things.

And the woman beheld Sammael, the angel of death, and


was afraid; yet she knew that the tree was good to eat, and
that it was medicine for the enlightenment of the eyes,
and desirable tree by means of which to understand. And
she took of its fruit, and did eat; and she gave to her hus-

zen garcia 174


band with her, and he did eat. And the eyes of both were
enlightened, and they knew that they were naked, divested
of the purple robe in which they had been created. And
they saw the sight of their shame, and sewed to themselves
the leaves of figs, and made to them cinctures
And the Lord God brought the three unto judgment;
and He said to the serpent, Because thou hast done this,
cursed art thou of all the cattle, and of all the beasts of
the field: upon thy belly thou shalt go, and thy feet shall
be cut off, and thy skin thou shalt cast away once in seven
years; and the poison of death shall be in thy mouth, and
dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy life. And I will put
enmity between thee and the woman, and between the seed of
thy son, and the seed of her sons; and it shall be when the sons
of the woman keep the commandments of the law, they will be
prepared to smite thee upon thy head; but when they forsake the
commandments of the law, thou wilt be ready to wound them
in their heel
And Adam knew his wife Eve, who had desired the
Angel; and she conceived, and bare Cain; and she said, I
have acquired a man, the angel of the Lord
Palestinian Targum Genesis 3:6, 3:15, 4:1

And Adam knew Hava his wife, who had desired the
Angel; and she conceived, and bare Kain; and she said, I
have acquired a man, the Angel of the Lord. And she added
to bear from her husband Adam his twin, even Habel.
Targum Onkelos, Genesis 4:1

And Adam knew his wife Eve, who was pregnant by the
Angel Sammael, and she conceived and bare Cain; and
he was like the heavenly beings, and not like the earthly
beings, and she said, I have acquired a man, the angel of
the Lord.
Targum of Jonathan, Genesis 4:1

175 sons of god


This is the book of the genealogy of Man. In the day that
the Lord created man, in the likeness of the Lord He made
him. Male and female He created them, and blessed them
in the name of His Word; and He called their name Man
in the day they were created. And Adam lived a hundred
and thirty years, and begat Sheth, who had the likeness of
his image and of his similitude: for before had Hava born
Kain, who was not like to him; and Habel was killed by
his hand. And Kain was cast out; neither is his seed gene-
alogized in the book of the genealogy of Adam. But after-
wards there was born one like him, and he called his name
Sheth. And the days of Adam after he begat Sheth were
eight hundred years, and he begat sons and daughters.
Palestinian Targum, Genesis 5:1

Notice that chapter five of Genesis from the Targums specifies Kain
as not being of the genealogical line of Adam and that Hava or Eve
birthed him prior to giving birth to Sheth, who was of the similitude
and likeness of Adam. Kains line is detailed in Genesis four, which,
according to the Targums, begins with the seduction of Hava by
Sammael, the angel of death. Traditional kjv readers believe that
Genesis 4:1 references Cains birth to Adam: And Adam knew Eve
his wife; and she conceived, and bare Cain, and said, I have gotten a
man from the Lord. (kjv)
What is interesting about the commentary from the various
translations are that the additions cite Habel as being a twin born
to Adam after Cains conception and that Adam was responsible
only for siring Abel. Another asserts Samael as being the father of
Cain, who resembled the likeness of the heavenly beings and not
earthly beings. Cains birth can only be clarified, in my opinion, with
the insight of the Targums. Sammael is one of the three names
of Yaldaboath, the demiurge that the Gnostics say rules over this
world. Just to further illustrate that this story was known to the
Early Christians, I will utilize another story which also illustrates
this fact but in a different light, one which focuses primarily on the

zen garcia 176


fact that Adam had found his wife Eve already pregnant with Cain
before having ever known her in any carnal way.

XIII. I Now it was the sixth month with her, and behold
Joseph came from his building, and he entered into his
house and found her great with child. And he smote his
face, and cast himself down upon the ground on sackcloth
and wept bitterly, saying: With what countenance shall I
look unto the Lord my God and what prayer shall I make
concerning this maiden? For I received her out of the tem-
ple of the Lord my God a virgin, and have not kept her
safe. Who is he that hath ensnared me? Who hath done
this evil in mine house and hath defiled the virgin? Is not
the story of Adam repeated in me? For as at the hour of his
giving thanks the serpent came and found Eve alone and
deceived her, so hath it befallen me also. And Joseph arose
from off the sackcloth and called Mary and said unto her
O thou that wast cared for by God, why hast thou done
this? Thou hast forgotten the Lord thy God. Why hast
thou humbled thy soul, thou that wast nourished up in
the Holy of Holies and didst receive food at the hand of
an angel? 3 But she wept bitterly, saying: I am pure and I
know not a man. And Joseph said unto her: Whence then
is that which is in thy womb? and she said: As the Lord
my God liveth, I know not whence it is come unto me.
Protevangelium of James

In this first century text, Joseph states that the story of Adam had
been repeated in him, meaning that Adam too found his wife preg-
nant with a child he had no idea from whence it came. Like Joseph,
who returned home to find Mary pregnant, so too had Adam found
Eve already pregnant with Cain. Both were confused as to what
had happened; yet we know that Mary was blessed to be chosen as
receptacle for the glory of our Savior, while Eve was seduced and
impregnated with Cain.

177 sons of god


The devil planted a reed in the middle of paradise. And
in one spit he made the serpent, whom he commanded to
live in the reed. In such a way the devil concealed his evil
design so they might not know his trickery However,
the devil slipped into the body of the evil serpent and
seduced the angel who was in the form of a woman and
he spread over her head the powerful desire of sin, and
he satiated Eve with his bodily desire while he attended
to the serpents tail (suggests the penis). That is why the
humans are called the children of the devil and children
of the serpent, because they serve the desire of the devil,
who is their father, and will serve it to the consummation
of this century.
The Gospel of the Secret Supper

But a very horrible snake craftily deceived them to go to


the fate of death and receive knowledge of good and evil.
But the woman first became a betrayer to him. She gave,
and persuaded him to sin in his ignorance. He was per-
suaded by the womans words, forgot about his immor-
tal creator, and neglected clear commands. Therefore,
instead of good they received evil, as they had done. And
then they sewed the leaves of the sweet fig tree and made
clothes and put them on each other. They concealed their
plans, because shame had come upon them. The Immortal
became angry with them and expelled them from the place
of immortals. For it had been decreed that they remain in a
mortal place, since they had not kept the command of the
great immortal God, and attended to it.
Sibylline Oracles, Book 1

zen garcia 178


Prison Planet

Humanity must grasp again the memory of how it was that we fell
from grace to be clothed in flesh and subject to death. The most
important piece of wisdom anywhere relevant to our current dis-
placement from heaven and the Father is understanding how the
fall led humanity to a state of being stripped of our former bright
nature and glory as immortal beings. The world had not remained
in a wholesome, innocent state because Adam of Paradise and his
wife, Eve, were deceived only nine hours after their initial creation.
The Lord had to accommodate Lucifers rebellion and the seduction
of Eve before completing the ordering of creation in what should
have been blessing and goodness. He would, therefore, manifest the
Second World Age as a solution to verify the loyalties of all those
souls that would incarnate into this visible, material realm. Here,
free will would be allowed to reign along with the experience of
duality in both good and evil expression for what would be only a
short time. This Second World Age would exist for only 7,000 years
as we the Elohim spirits of the First World Age incarnate into flesh
and are tried by life and lesson.

At the third hour of the day Adam and Eve ascended into
Paradise, and for three hours they enjoyed the good things
thereof; for three hours they were in shame and disgrace, and
at the ninth hour their expulsion from Paradise took place.
Cave of Treasure

179
And there were fruit trees in the garden better than that
one. But the wicked Satan did not keep his faith and had no
good intent towards Me, that although I had created him,
he considered Me to be useless, and sought the Godhead
for himself; for this I hurled him down from heaven so
that he could not remain in his first estateit was he who
made the tree appear pleasant in your eyes, until you ate
of it, by believing his words. Thus have you transgressed
My commandment, and therefore I have brought on you
all these sorrows.
For I am God the Creator, who, when I created My
creatures, did not intend to destroy them. But after they
had sorely roused My anger, I punished them with griev-
ous plagues, until they repent. But, if on the contrary, they
still continue hardened in their transgression, they shall be
under a curse forever.
First Book of Adam and Eve 6:6-10

Prior to the fall, Adam and Eve inhabited paradise with the vari-
ous angels assigned to attend its glorious space. After the fall, they
assumed Earthly bodies of flesh and then fulfilled all the prophecies
declared in Genesis 3, namely that they would hunger, thirst, work,
procreate, and eventually die. The Lord had originally intended
Adam and Eve to be clothed in immortality, but because of the
deception of Satan, and their desire to be as gods with knowledge
of good and evil, the Lord was forced to cast them out of Paradise,
placing them here upon the lower Earth in the Cave of Treasures.
Yahweh separated the feminine from Adam so that death should
come to him by his wife, as He knew that Lucifer would attempt
to seduce Eve. The fall was an integral part of the Lords desire to
create another world, a proving ground of sorts, whereby all would
be tried by the persecutions of those fallen angels who were given
dominion over the Earth.
And God created that sea of his own good pleasure, for He knew
what would come of the man He would make; so that after he had

zen garcia 180


left the garden, on account of his transgression, men should be born
in the earth (The Apocalypse of Adam, 1:4).
Already banished to the lower Earth, Satan desired to exact
revenge against Yahushuah for casting him from the upper heavens,
but having no power against the Lord, he decided on plotting the
fall of sixth day Adam and Eve. He wanted their children and all
those who would be born of the flesh to be subject to a world under
his dominion for the short time the Father and the Son would allow
him rule. Satan would accomplish this task by assuming the shape
of the serpent to enter the Lords Paradise.
This serpent is not a snake as we know snakes today but con-
sidered by some scriptures to be the wisest and most beautiful of all
creatures then found upon the earth. Before the Lord cursed it, this
serpent was a type of dragon enchanter, a magician clever enough to
trick others into committing sin. Eve was seduced by this Nachash,
and eating of the forbidden fruit set the stage for what would be the
beginning of the Second World Age.
And the serpent said unto the woman, Ye shall not surely die:
For God know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be
opened, and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil (Genesis
3:4-5, kjv).
When Yahweh questioned Adam and Eve about their nakedness,
He was commenting on their feeble attempts to hide what was the
loss of their bright natures that they, thanks to Lucifer, were now
devoid of. Their initial awareness of being naked was their recog-
nition that they had lost the light with which they had originally
been clothed.

And he said, Who told thee that thou wast naked? Hast
thou eaten of the tree, whereof I commanded thee that
thou shouldest not eat? And the man said, The woman
whom thou gavest to be with me, she gave me of the tree,
and I did eat. And the Lord God said unto the woman,

181 sons of god


What is this that thou hast done? And the woman said,
The serpent beguiled me, and I did eat.
Genesis 3:11-13 (kjv)

Many claim that angels cannot have sex with humankind because
of a passage that stated that angels were not created to be given in
marriage, and that is true; however, those that fell and willingly took
on the flesh assumed form as spirit men that are and were capa-
ble of fornication with earth women. Proof that angels had forni-
cated with humankind early in our history can be confirmed from
myriad sources, yet I will use two: the Book of Enoch and the Genesis
Apocryphon. Both verify the accounting of angelic interdiction into
the affairs of and direct procreation with humanity.
Lamech, the son of Enoch, knew about and was warned by his
father, about the watchers, and their incursion upon the world of
humanity. Upon the birth of his son, Noah, who had an extremely
bright nature, Lamech was greatly distressed that his wife, too, had
been impregnated by a fallen watcher. He doubted Noah was his
son and confronted Batenosh, his wife in accusation. She assured
him that she had not been with anyone but him, but still uncertain
Lamech summoned the ghost of his father Enoch, so as to inquire
through him whether Noah was truly his child or one born of the
watchers. Enoch revealed to him that Noah was indeed his son and
that the Lord would soon judge the world for the incursion of the
watchers upon the daughters of humanity. It was during his grand-
father Jareds lifetime that the watchers rebelled against the Lord
and challenged Him to place them into flesh form, which birthed a
race of cannibalistic giants upon the unsuspecting world.
The consequence of this led to the global deluge and the wip-
ing out of all flesh from the face of the Earth. Post deluge, Yahweh
would restore harmony and order through Noah and his fam-
ily as they were the last remaining of the children of Adam that
had retained purity in their generations. Noahs line was the only

zen garcia 182


remnant of humans on the earth that had avoided mixing with the
contaminated DNA of the fallen watchers and the hybrid giants.
Through Noahs children Yahweh would repopulate and replenish
the Earth in restored goodness and harmony. This story proves that
prior to Lamech, as Genesis 6 claims, the fallen angels had already
interbred with humanity.

Then I considered whether the pregnancy was due to the


Watchers and Holy Ones, or (should be ascribed) to the
Nephil[im], and I grew perturbed about this child. Then I
Lamech, became afraid and went to Batenosh, [my] w[ife
saying, Dec]lare [to me] by the Most High, by the
Lord of Greatness, by the E[ternal] King [whether the
child comes from the] heavenly beings! Everything will
you truthfully tell me, whether [ ] you will tell me
without lies: is this [ swear] by the Eternal King
until you speak truthfully to me and not with lies [ ].
Then Batenosh my wife spoke with me forcefully.
[She we]pt and said, O my brother and master, recall for
yourself my pregnancy [ ] marital relations, and
my breath within its sheath (?). (Can) I truthfully [tell
you] everythin[g?] [ ] then I was perturbed even
more. When Batenosh my wife noticed that my face had
changed (its) expression [ ] then she gained control
of her emotion(s) and spoke with me. She said to me, O
my master and [brother, recall for yourself ] my pregnancy.
I swear to you by the Great Holy One, by the Ruler of
Hea[ven] that this seed is yours, that this pregnancy is
from you, that from you is the planting of [this] fruit [and
that it is] not from any alien, or from any of the Watchers,
or from any heavenly bein[g. Why has the appearance] of
your face changed like this upon you? And (why) is it dis-
figured, and your spirit dejected like this?
The Genesis Apocryphon, Column 2

183 sons of god


As related previously, the tree of knowledge of good and evil was and
is, in my opinion, symbolic of both Lucifer and the grape vine from
which the Kolbrin Bible says an intoxicating beverage had been for-
mulated. This beverage caused a powerful stupor to overcome each,
leaving them susceptible to rape by Satan and his demon angels.
The Genesis 3 account veils a prophecy that would be fulfilled once
Adam and Eve are transformed into flesh bodies on the eighth day.
The Lord had already foreseen what would happen to all three now
that Adam and Eve would also join Lucifer and his angels in being
born on a strange planet and in a fallen state. After Eve takes on
physical form, she is raped and impregnated by Lucifer with his
firstborn child, Cain. This unholy sexual union began the 7,000-
year cycle of the Second World Age, for why truly would the Lord
condemn anyone to death for simply eating a piece of fruit? Yahweh
foresaw what would happen to each of them once all had been trans-
formed into flesh. That is why He told Eve that the consequences of
her actions with Lucifer would result in labor and pained child birth.
Unto the woman he said, I will greatly multiply thy sorrow and thy
conception; in sorrow thou shalt bring forth children; and thy desire
shall be to thy husband, and he shall rule over thee (Genesis 1:6, kjv).
Eve lusted after the beauty of the tree and, having desired it,
ate of its fruit, symbolically meaning two thingsthat she lost her
angelic, bright-natured, immortal state of being and that she was
impregnated by Satan with Cain, who would be the firstborn son of
the devil and the seed line that the devil would use to war against
the seed of the woman. The statements in Genesis 3 are prophetic
in nature and relate to the eighth day when they would be trans-
formed into fleshly Earth bodies. Eve, who was still a virgin, had
never birthed any children and did not know the pain of childbirth,
is told by God in this verse that she would now, as the result of her
fornication with Lucifer, bear children in pain and that her desire
would be for Adam, which is the lustful call to procreate, the bloom-
ing of sexuality in mortal humans.

zen garcia 184


And unto Adam he said, Because thou hast hearkened
unto the voice of thy wife, and hast eaten of the tree, of
which I commanded thee, saying, Thou shalt not eat of it:
cursed is the ground for thy sake; in sorrow shalt thou eat
of it all the days of thy life; Thorns also and thistles shall
it bring forth to thee; and thou shalt eat the herb of the
field; In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread, till thou
return unto the ground; for out of it wast thou taken: for
dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return.
Genesis 3:17 (kjv)

Yahweh told Adam before banishment from the kingdom that


whereas in paradise the ground gave fruit and bounty freely of itself,
upon the lower Earth he would now have to work the ground to
bring forth food and the sustenance they would need to replenish
the strength of their earthly bodies and those of their children. He
also told them both specifically that, as mortal beings, they and their
children would eventually have to succumb to death. Before the fall,
they knew not mortality, thirst, hunger, cold, heat, darkness, night,
nor death. The Second World Age began with the generations of
Adam through Seth and Lucifer through Cain.
Eve, who would be progenitor of both lines, would be called the
mother of all living, and yet Adam, because he was not the father of
Cain or his line, is not called the father of all living. Adams firstborn
son, Abelwho became the first soul to succumb to death once in
bodily incarnationwould be replaced by Seth, who would sire the
generations of Adam.
When Eve was still with Adam, death did not exist. When she
was separated from him, death came into being. If he enters again
and attains his former self, death will be no more (The Gospel
of Phillip).

And on the morning of the forty-third day, they came out


of the cave, sorrowful and crying. Their bodies were lean,

185 sons of god


and they were parched from hunger and thirst, from fast-
ing and praying, and from their heavy sorrow on account
of their transgression. And when they had come out of
the cave they went up the mountain to the west of the
garden. There they stood and prayed and besought God
to grant them forgiveness of their sins. And after their
prayers Adam began to beg God, saying, O my Lord, my
God, and my Creator, You commanded the four elements*
to be gathered together, and they were gathered together
by Thine order.
Then You spread Your hand and created me out of one
element, that of dust of the earth; and You brought me into
the garden at the third hour, on a Friday, and informed me
of it in the cave. Then, at first, I knew neither night nor
day, for I had a bright nature; neither did the light in which
I lived ever leave me to know night or day. Then, again,
O Lord, in that third hour in which You created me, You
brought to me all beasts, and lions, and ostriches, and fowls
of the air, and all things that move in the earth, which You
had created at the first hour before me of the Friday.
And Your will was that I should name them all, one by
one, with a suitable name. But You gave me understand-
ing and knowledge, and a pure heart and a right mind
from you, that I should name them after Thine own mind
regarding the naming of them. O God, You made them
obedient to me, and ordered that not one of them break
from my sway, according to Your commandment, and to
the dominion which You had given me over them.
But now they are all estranged from me. Then it was
in that third hour of Friday, in which You created me, and
commanded me concerning the tree, to which I was nei-
ther to go near, nor to eat thereof; for You said to me in the
garden, When you eat of it, of death you shall die. And
if You had punished me as You said, with death, I should
have died that very moment. Moreover, when You com-
manded me regarding the tree, I was neither to approach
nor to eat thereof, Eve was not with me; You had not yet

zen garcia 186


created her, neither had You yet taken her out of my side;
nor had she yet heard this order from you.
Then, at the end of the third hour of that Friday, O
Lord, You caused a slumber and a sleep to come over me,
and I slept, and was overwhelmed in sleep. Then You drew
a rib out of my side, and created it after my own likeness
and image. Then I awoke; and when I saw her and knew
who she was, I said, This is bone of my bones, and flesh of
my flesh; from now on she shall be called woman. It was
of Your good will, O God, that You brought a slumber in a
sleep over me, and that You immediately brought Eve out
of my side, until she was out, so that I did not see how she
was made; neither could I witness, O my Lord, how awful
and great are Your goodness and glory. And of Your good-
will, O Lord, You made us both with bodies of a bright
nature, and You made us two, one; and You gave us Your
grace, and filled us with praises of the Holy Spirit; that we
should be neither hungry nor thirsty, nor know what sor-
row is, nor yet faintness of heart; neither suffering, fasting
nor weariness.
But now, O God, since we transgressed Your com-
mandment and broke Your law, You have brought us out
into a strange land, and have caused suffering, and faint-
ness, hunger and thirst to come over us. Now, therefore, O
God, we pray you, give us something to eat from the gar-
den, to satisfy our hunger with it; and something where-
with to quench our thirst. For, behold, many days, O God,
we have tasted nothing and drunk nothing, and our flesh
is dried up, and our strength is wasted, and sleep is gone
from our eyes from faintness and crying.
First Book of Adam and Eve 34:1-19

Then God looked again at Adam and his crying and groan-
ing, and the Word of God came to him, and said to him:
O Adam, when you were in My garden, you knew neither
eating nor drinking; neither faintness nor suffering; neither
leanness of flesh, nor change; neither did sleep depart from

187 sons of god


thine eyes. But since you transgressed, and came into this
strange land, all these trials are come over you.
First Book of Adam and Eve 35:1-2

For seducing Eve and causing the fall of the Lords most beloved
creatures, Yahweh condemned Satan to feed off the dust of the
Earth, which metaphorically represents his need to feed on the
flesh and blood of humanity. Once the most beautiful of all angels,
Satan in his transformed state is now recognized as many different
embodiments: the ancient dragon which drew one third of the stars
of heaven, a feathered serpent reptilian, hybrid fish god, and even the
many names associated to him as a wraith or demon which possesses
physical flesh, assuming personas as he moves in and out of body,
people, and lifetime to achieve the goals of the New World Order.
And the Lord God said unto the serpent, Because thou hast
done this, thou art cursed above all cattle, and above every beast of
the field; upon thy belly shalt thou go, and dust shalt thou eat all the
days of thy life (Genesis 3:14, kjv).

Then Adam and Eve came out at the mouth of the cave,
and went towards the garden. But as they went near it,
before the western gate, from which Satan came when
he deceived Adam and Eve, they found the serpent that
became Satan coming at the gate, and sorrowfully lick-
ing the dust, and wiggling on its breast on the ground, by
reason of the curse that fell on it from God. And whereas
before the serpent was the most exalted of all beasts, now
it was changed and become slippery, and the meanest of
them all, and it crept on its breast and went on its belly.
And whereas it was the fairest of all beasts, it had been
changed, and was become the ugliest of them all.
Instead of feeding on the best food, now it turned to
eat the dust. Instead of living, as before, in the best places,
now it lived in the dust. And, whereas it had been the
most beautiful of all beasts, all of which stood dumb at its

zen garcia 188


beauty, it was now abhorred of them. And, again, whereas
it lived in one beautiful home, to which all other animals
came from elsewhere; and where it drank, they drank also
of the same; now, after it had become venomous, by reason
of Gods curse, all beasts fled from its home, and would not
drink of the water it drank; but fled from it.
The First Book of Adam and Eve 17:1-6

In Genesis 3:15 we are presented with the prophecy of the coming


war between the children of Adam and the children of Satan. In
Genesis 4 we are given a detailed accounting of the children of Cain
and his blood line as they are left out of the Genesis 5 accounting
of the children of Adam through Seth. Understanding that there
are two bloodlines on the earth will help one to understand why
throughout the Old Testament, New Testament, and lost forgotten
books of scripturethe Lord commands the children of Adam to
avoid intermarrying with the children of Cain. Unless one under-
stands that Cain originated out of the devils loins one would not
understand why it is that evil is perpetuated in such abundance in
this world. There is literally a seed line dedicated to the worship of
Lucifer and evil just as there is a seed line dedicated to God and
good. Those born of Cains line are more apt to bring forth evil and
are more susceptible to following the abominable ways of Satan and
his dedication to self-destruction. Speaking to the serpent, the Lord
said, I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between
thy seed and her seed. It shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise
his heel (Genesi 3:15, kjv).
From the very beginning of the fall of Adam and Eve, Satan
would wage a perpetual war against their descendants for what
would be dominion of the Earth. Genesis 3:15 very literally con-
firms that Satan indeed has his own seed line. This line also foretells
the birth of Yahushuah Savior Messiah through the line of Seth.
The two seed lines would battle against one another for 7,000 years,
and through this warring all would come to know the experience

189 sons of god


of both good and evil. Once one understands what was behind the
fall and how it led to the prophecies revealed in Genesis 3, one will
understand why it was that the Lord told Adam, But of the fruit of
the tree which is in the midst of the garden, God hath said, Ye shall
not eat of it, neither shall ye touch it, lest ye die (Genesis 2:3, kjv).
Some claim that Yahweh lied when he told this to Adam because
Adam did not immediately die; however, most do not understand
that Adam and Eve would not fulfill this prophecy as human,
angelic, bright-nature beings. It was not until they were re-crafted
into earthly flesh bodies and upon ending their mortal life spans that
they in fact did as Genesis 2:3 and 2:17 foretold. Besides, we know
that one day is as a thousand years unto the Lord and that both
Adam and Eve died before they reached a thousand years of age.

Then came the Word of God to Adam, and said to him:


O Adam, look at that garden of joy and at this earth of
toil, and behold the garden is full of angels, but look at
yourself alone on this earth with Satan whom you obeyed.
Yet, if you had submitted, and been obedient to Me, and
had kept My Word, you would be with My angels in My
garden. But when you transgressed and obeyed Satan, you
became his guests among his angels, that are full of wick-
edness; and you came to this earth, that brings forth to you
thorns and thistles.
First Book of Adam and Eve 56:1-4

zen garcia 190


Abandon Hope All
Ye That Enter Here

Once Adam and Eve fall from grace, their bodies are transformed
into flesh. In this form they would be tested in duality, learning the
ways of good from the angels of the Lord assigned to minister to
them and evil from Satan and his minions who would hold domin-
ion over the lower visible Earth until the end of days and second
coming of Yahshuah Savior Messiah.

Then God, the ruler of the Aeons and the powers, divided
us in wrath. Then we became two Aeons. And the glory
in our hearts left us, me and your mother Eve, along with
the first knowledge that breathed within us. And glory fled
from us; not from this Aeon from which we had come
forth, I and Eve your mother. But knowledge entered into
the seed of great Aeons. For this reason I myself have
called you by the name of that man who is the seed of the
great generation or from whom it comes. After those days
the eternal knowledge of the God of truth withdrew from
me and your mother Eve. Since that time we learned about
dead things, like men.
The Apocalypse of Adam

Humanity must grasp again the memory of how it was that we fell
from grace to be clothed in flesh and subject to death. The most

191
important piece of wisdom anywhere relevant to our current dis-
placement is understanding how the fall lead humankind to a state
of being stripped of our former bright nature. The fall condemned
humanity to be born of the flesh upon the Earth while inhabiting
the planet with the condemned rebel angels and the fallen watchers.
Because the Lord exalts Adam above the angels who abandoned their
first estate, the archons set a course to wage war on the descendants
of Adam and Eve, fulfilling the prophecy of Genesis 3:15.
Know you and understand concerning this Satan, that he seeks
to deceive you and your descendants after you (First Book of Adam
and Eve, 29).
For only in understanding the fall can one grasp how we came
to be on the Earth with Satan and his minions. It is important to
acknowledge evil for only in accepting that the fallen angels are
haughty, proud, arrogant, and unwilling to repent can one under-
stand the kind of evil that is present even unto this day upon the
world stage, and how determined they are to not leave one of the
sons of men to inherit the ordinances they abandoned in leaving
their first estate.
Even with the severity of their condemnation the fallen ones
promise only to escalate murder against the children of Adam and
Eve. Yahushuah, however, in His infinite wisdom would devise a
plan to restore those angels that would incarnate into flesh during
the Second World Age. Salvation would be brought to Adam, Eve,
and their righteous descendants while condemnation would await
those angels who abandoned their first estate, preferring evil to good.

And He made Adam in His own image and likeness, so


that He might remove Satan because of his pride, together
with his host, and might establish AdamHis own
planttogether with the righteous, His children, for His
praises. For the plan of God was decided upon and decreed
in that He said, I will become man, and I will be in every-
thing which I have created, I will abide in flesh. And in the

zen garcia 192


days that came after, by His good pleasure there was born
in the flesh of the Second Zion the second Adam, Who
was our Savior CHRIST.
Kebra Nagast 1

The plan of salvation would require the Lord adorning flesh Himself,
and after dying on the cross He would assert His authority over death
and how he is the author of eternal life to those who believe upon
Him. He is returning again this time to assume His Judgment seat
where He will send out His angels as reaper for the harvest. Those
that are ready will inherit everlasting life and serve the Lord where the
rebel angels once had opportunity to, and those that arent shall, along
with the angels that denied Him, be cast into outer darkness.

Then Satan said to Adam, Do you think that when I have


promised one something that I would actually deliver it
to him or fulfill my word? Of course not. For I myself
have never even thought of obtaining what I promised.
Therefore I fell, and I made you fall by that for which
I myself fell; and with you also, whosoever accepts my
counsel, falls thereby. But now, O Adam, because you fell
you are under my rule, and I am king over you; because
you have obeyed me and have transgressed against your
God. Neither will there be any deliverance from my hands
until the day promised you by your God. Again he said,
Because we do not know the day agreed on with you by
your God, nor the hour in which you shall be delivered, for
that reason we will multiply war and murder on you and
your descendants after you. This is our will and our good
pleasure, that we may not leave one of the sons of men to
inherit our orders in heaven. For as to our home, O Adam,
it is in burning fire; and we will not stop our evil doing, no,
not one day nor one hour. And I, O Adam, shall set you on
fire when you come into the cave to live there.
The first Book of Adam and Eve 57:5-10

193 sons of god


The war against God has been ongoing since even before the dawn of
humanity upon this planet. While most have little understanding of
how evil entered the world stage, those who do their homework will
easily find ample texts to confirm that indeed the fallen angels have
always rebelled against and disregarded the commandments of our
Lord, so much even that they willing abandoned their positions in
the heavens to interject themselves into the affairs of humanity. The
Lord warned us about the rebel angels and their proclivity toward
evil; that is why the first two commandments deal directly with the
fallen ones and those who worship them. Lucifer has always sought
some way to interfere with the fate and destiny of humans. His plan
has always been to wage war egregiously against the Lord and his
highest creatures. His hope was that he could somehow thwart judg-
ment by preventing the birth of the Messiah.
Having fallen also, Adam and Eve attempted a last-ditch effort
to beseech the Lord for forgiveness, hoping He would allow them
to remain in Paradise. The Father instead sent the Word to implore
them to follow the commandments and instructions. He would pro-
videas guidefor life. So long as they adhered to His directions,
Yahweh Elohim would send His only begotten Son, Yahushuah, to
enter the flesh exactly 5,500 years after their banishment to lead
them back into paradise. With strengthened heart both were then
exiled to the wilderness of the lower Earth.

But the Lord turned to Adam and said: I will not suffer
thee henceforward to be in paradise. And Adam answered
and said, Grant me, O Lord, of the Tree of Life that I may
eat of it, before I be cast out. Then the Lord spake to Adam,
Thou shalt not take of it now, for I have commanded the
cherubim with the flaming sword that turneth (every way)
to guard it from thee that thou taste not of it; but thou
hast the war which the adversary hath put into thee, yet
when thou art gone out of paradise, if thou shouldst keep
thyself from all evil, as one about to die, when again the

zen garcia 194


Resurrection hath come to pass, I will raise thee up and
then there shall be given to thee the Tree of Life.
The Apocalypse of Moses 28-29

God said to Adam, I have ordained on this earth days and


years, and you and your descendants shall live and walk in
them, until the days and years are fulfilled; when I shall
send the Word that created you, and against which you
have transgressed, the Word that made you come out of
the garden, and that raised you when you were fallen.
First Book of Adam and Eve, 31

For 5,500 years the souls of humanity would be confined in Sheol


until that time when Yahushuah Savior Messiah, as promised, would
enter the flesh, die upon the cross, descend into hell, and lead the
righteous born of Adam and Eve back into Paradise. This is the
first resurrection as spoken about in Revelation. When Yahushuah
ascended unto His glory, all of the souls of the patriarchs were
also resurrected and taken up to paradise with Him, where New
Jerusalem awaits us even now.

Then came the Word of God to Adam, and said to him:


O Adam, as to what you said, Bring me into a land where
there is rest, it is not another land than this, but it is the
kingdom of heaven where alone there is rest. But you can
not make your entrance into it at present; but only after
your judgment is past and fulfilled. Then will I make you
go up into the kingdom of heaven, you and your righteous
descendants; and I will give you and them the rest you ask
for at present.
And if you said, Give me of the Water of Life that I
may drink and liveit cannot be this day, but on the day
that I shall descend into hell, and break the gates of brass,
and bruise in pieces the kingdoms of iron. Then will I in
mercy save your soul and the souls of the righteous, to give

195 sons of god


them rest in My garden. And that shall be when the end
of the world is come.
And, again, in regards to the Water of Life you seek, it
will not be granted you this day; but on the day that I shall
shed My blood on your head* in the land of Golgotha**.
For My blood shall be the Water of Life to you at that
time, and not to just you alone, but to all your descendants
who shall believe in Me; that it be to them for rest forever.
The Lord said again to Adam, O Adam, when you
were in the garden, these trials did not come to you. But
since you transgressed My commandment, all these suffer-
ings have come over you. Now, also, does your flesh require
food and drink; drink then of that water that flows by you
on the face of the earth.
The First Book of Adam and Eve 42:1-11

Those born into the flesh would languish under the authority of
death and the dominion of Satan until the 7,000 years were fulfilled
and the Second World Age completed. Yahushuah would, as proph-
esied, enter the flesh, be born of a virgin, and serve as the sacrificial
lamb for that years Feast of Passover.
In fulfilling His role, the Son would then grant a total forgive-
ness of sins to all, offering salvation even to the Canaanite blood-
lines, which now include the Illuminati and pagan nations that have
been excluded from the blessings of Hebraic Israel. Clearing the
slate for the past deeds of humanity, Christ presented to each of us
individually a chance to aspire again to salvation and eternal rest He
so graciously extends to each of us no matter which seed-line we
were born into. Many born into the Illuminati, Kainite, Luciferian
bloodlines have resigned themselves to accept their familys lot
without hope of ever being able to change for themselves the path
fated for them.
Considered unredeemable, some believe that, because of
Illuminati ties, one cannot inherit the kingdom. Know, however,
that Christ died on the cross for all of us and that even the most

zen garcia 196


evil and vile of humans, if truly desiring repentance, can and will be
grafted into the family of Christ. We are each called now to serve
as foot washers to one another so that, in His example, we should
be found worthy to escape all those things coming upon the earth,
which will make mens hearts fail them.
On that day, when every knee shall bow and every tongue confess
that Christ is judge and Lord, it will be our own choices within this
life the choices, thoughts, actions, and deeds we committed while
in the fleshthat will convict us before Him. Use what one has left
of time and life to glorify the Lord and kingdom. We are determin-
ing with each moment, each thought, and each choice whom we
wish to serve and even whether we wish to serve at all. Our choices
are individual, and yet we are co-creators of our personal fate and
destiny, and as such we must assume responsibility for our part in the
creation of our realities and the manifestation of our lives.

And Thou knowest how Thy Watchers, the fathers of these


spirits, acted in my day: and as for these spirits which are
living, imprison them and hold them fast in the place of
condemnation, and let them not bring destruction on the
sons of thy servant, my God; for these are malignant, and
6 created in order to destroy And He said: Let the tenth
part of them remain before him, and let nine parts descend
into the place of condemnation. And one of us He com-
manded that we should teach Noah all their medicines;
for He knew that they would not walk in uprightness, nor
strive in righteousness. And we did according to all His
words: all the malignant evil ones we bound in the place of
condemnation and a tenth part of them we left that they
might be subject before Satan on the earth.
The Book of Jubilees, 10

197 sons of god


The Watcher
Rebellion

I have cited passages from long-forgotten books and deciphered


codices that have only recently been released to provide clarity on this
most intriguing subject of Old Testament Lorethe fallen angels,
archons, principalities, and rulers of darkness not of this world. It is
important to understand that even though Lucifer and one third of
the Angels were cast out of the heavens on the second day, another
group of angels descended willingly from their celestial abode to
reside here upon the Earth during the age of Jared, Enochs father.
This group of 200 angels brought additional evil into the world and
aligned themselves with those angels that fell during Lucifers first
rebellion. This second incursion of angels is what leads to the birth
of the giants of Genesis 6 or the men of renown.
How and why the watcher rebellion happened and what this has
to do with explaining the strangeness of the world we now live in
makes for quite an intriguing story. I will connect myths long for-
gotten to a specific chapter of a little known book called the Kebra
Nagast to unlock this tale and relate how the watchers provoked the
anger of the Most High. After Lucifer seduced Eve, some of the
Lords angels, in secret envy, rushed to report on Adams transgres-
sion and their fall from grace. Jealous that the Lord had appointed
Adam dominion over the third heaven of paradise, and not under-

199
standing why the Lord would so love such an inferior creation, the
watchers ridiculed Adams shortcomings and substandard nature.

And there were certain angels with whom God was


wrothnow He, the Knower of the heart knew them
and they reviled ADAM, saying, Since God hath shown
love to him He hath set us to minister unto him, and the
beasts and creeping things, and the fish of the sea, and the
birds of the air, and all fruits, and the trees of the field, and
the heavens and the earth also; and He hath appointed the
heavens to give him rain, and the earth to give him fruits.
And the sun and the moon also hath He given him, the
sun to give him light by day and the moon to give him
light in the night season.
He hath fashioned him with His fingers, and He hath
created him in His own image, and He hath kissed him
and breathed upon him the spirit of life; and He saith unto
him, My son, My firstborn, My beloved. And He hath set
him in a garden to eat and enjoy himself without sickness
or suffering, and without toil or labour, but He hath com-
manded him not to eat from one tree. And being given all
these things by God, ADAM hath transgressed and eaten
of that tree, and he hath become hated and rejected, and
God hath driven him out of the Garden, and from that
time ADAM hath abandoned his hope, for he hath trans-
gressed the commandment of his Creator.
Kebra Nagast 100

Attempting to rouse trouble for Adam, some of the watchers inform


the Lord that even after He had brought all things into subjec-
tion to His human creations, both Adam and Eve transgress the
only commandment He gave when placing them in Paradise. Even
after warning Adam to abstain from any contact with the Tree of
Knowledge of Good and Evil, Lucifer, both interact with and are
seduced by him. This single transgression would results in their
banishment from paradise and loss of immortality. They would be

zen garcia 200


forced now to incarnate into bodies of flesh, in which they would
have to sustain their physical natures with actual labor in gathering
the sustenance they would need to continue living.

And God answered the angels who reviled ADAM in this


wise, and He said unto them, Why do ye revile ADAM
in this wise? For he is flesh, and blood, and ashes and
dust. And the angels answered and said unto Him, May
we declare before Thee the sin of ADAM? And God said
unto them, Declare ye (his sin), and I will hearken unto
you, and I Myself will answer you in respect of ADAM
My servant. For God had worked on behalf of ADAM.
And God said, I created him out of the dust, and I will not
cast away that which I have fashioned. I brought him forth
out of non-existence, and I will not make My handiwork a
laughingstock for his enemies.
Kebra Nagast 100

Those angels that were jealous of Adam laid reviling accusation


against him and tempted the Lord with question as to whether He
had made the right decision in creating Adam. Their contempt leads
them to challenge their own loyalties as they requested the Lord to
transform them also into bodies of flesh.

And those angels said, Praise be unto Thee, O Lord. For


Thou, the Knower of hearts, knowest that we have reviled
ADAM because he hath transgressed Thy commandment
that he was not to eat of one tree after Thou hadst made
him lord over everything which Thou hast created, and
hadst set him over every work of Thy hands. And if Thou
hadst not told him, and if Thou hadst not commanded him
not to eat of one tree there would have been no offence (on
his part); and if he had eaten because of a lack of food
there would have been no offence (on his part). But Thy
word made him to know, and Thou didst say, As surely
as thou eatest of this tree thou shalt die. And he, after

201 sons of god


hearing this, made bold and ate. Thou didst not let him
lack sweet fruits to eat from the Garden, and Thou didst
not let him lack one to comfort him and a companion like
unto himself. And these things we say and make known
unto Thee, and we have revealed unto Thee how he hath
transgressed Thy commandment.
Kebra Nagast 100

The Lord defended Adam and Eve and addressed the envy of the
watchers by declaring that He created them (the watchers) out of air
and fire to be angels with purpose only to serve Him. He said that,
should He have created them from the four elements, they would have
transgressed even worse than that of Adam and Eve. Declaring their
superior nature, they accept the challenge and implore the Lord to allow
their transformation into bodies of flesh. Before transforming them,
however, He gave them fair warning to remain true and to not go the
way of evil in embracing flesh form. Should they go the route of Lucifer
and ditch all faith in goodness they, too, would suffer the wrath of those
who abandoned their first estate. He wanted the watchers to know that,
given free will they, too, could and would place their own souls at risk
for condemnation in following the path of those Angels that rebelled
with Lucifer in his attempt to assert his own throne above the glory of
God. Only in understanding the consequences of their decisions would
the Lord allow their descent to the Earth.

And the Merciful One and the Lover of mercy answered


them on behalf of ADAM, and said unto them, You have
I created out of fire and air with the one intent (that ye
should) praise (Me). Him have I created of twice as many
elements as youof dust and water, and of wind and fire;
and he became (a being) of flesh and blood. And in him
are ten thoughts (or, intentions), five good, and five bad.
And if his heart inciteth him to good, he walketh with
good intent; and if the Devil seduceth him, he walketh
with him on an evil path.

zen garcia 202


As for you, ye have no other object in your minds but
praise of Me, with the exception of that arrogant one who
produced evil, and became an evil being, and was driven
forth from your assembly. And now, why do ye magnify
yourselves over ADAM? If ye were as he is, and I had cre-
ated you of water and dust, ye would have been flesh and
blood, and ye would have transgressed My commandment
more than he hath done, and denied My word. And the
angels said unto Him, Praise be unto Thee, O Lord! Far be
it from us! We will not transgress Thy commandment, and
we will not oppose Thy word; for we are spiritual beings
for life, and he is a creature of dust (doomed) to folly. And
now try us well, and put us to the test so that Thou mayest
know whether we are able to keep Thy word.
And when they had vaunted themselves in this manner
God, the Lover of men, said unto them, If now ye go astray
so far as this in transgressing My word, the wrong will be
upon your own heads, (for) JAHANNa.m. (or, hell), and
fire, and sulphur, and fervent heat, and whirlwind shall be
your habitation until the Great Day: ye shall be kept in
chains which can neither be loosened nor broken for ever.
But if ye keep truly My word, and ye do My command-
ment, ye shall sit upon My right hand and upon My left.
For everyone who hath conquered is mighty, and he who
is conquered shall be overpowered. Now SATAN hath no
power whatsoever, for he hath only what he maketh to
germinate in the mind; and he cannot grasp firmly, and
he cannot perform anything, and he cannot beat, and he
cannot drag, and he cannot seize, and he cannot fight; he
can only make thoughts to germinate silently in the mind.
And him who is caught by the evil mind he prepareth for
destruction; and if (a man) hath conquered the evil mind
he findeth grace and hath a reward which is everlasting.
And to you, according to what ye wish, there shall be upon
you the mind of a man and the body of a man. But take
good heed to yourselves that ye transgress not My word
and break not My commandment; and defile not ye your-

203 sons of god


selves with eating, or drinking, or fornication, or with any
other thing whatsoever; and transgress ye not My word.
And straightway there were given unto them with His
word flesh, and blood, and a heart of the children of men.
And they were content to leave the height of heaven, and
they came down to earth, to the folly of the dancing of the
children of CAIN with all their work of the artisan, which
they had made in the folly of their fornication, and to their
singings, which they accompanied with the tambourine,
and the flutes, and the pipes, and much shouting, and loud
cries of joy and noisy songs.
And their daughters were there, and they enjoyed the
orgies without shame, for they scented themselves for the
men who pleased them, and they lost the balance in their
minds. And the men did not restrain themselves for a
moment, but they took to wife from among the women
those whom they had chosen, and committed sin with
them. For God hath no resting-place in the hearts of the
arrogant and those who revile, but He abideth in the hearts
of the humble and those who are sincere.
And He spake in the Gospel, saying, Woe be unto those
who make themselves righteous, and despise their neigh-
bours. And again He saith, God loveth the humble, and
He holdeth lightly those who magnify themselves. And
straightway God was wroth with them, and He bound
them in the terror of SHEL until the day of redemption,
as the Apostle saith, He treated His angels with severity.
He spared them not, but made them to dwell in a state of
judgement, and they were fettered until the Great Day.
The word of God conquered, Who had fashioned ADAM
in His likeness (or, form), and those who had reviled and
made a laughingstock of ADAM were conquered. And
the daughters of CAIN with whom the angels had com-
panied conceived, but they were unable to bring forth their
children, and they died. And of the children who were in
their wombs some died, and some came forth; having split

zen garcia 204


open the bellies of their mothers they came forth by their
navels.
And when they were grown up and reached mans
estate they became giants, whose height reached unto the
clouds; and for their sakes and the sakes of sinners the
wrath of God became quiet, and He said, My spirit shall
only rest on them for one hundred and twenty years, and I
will destroy them with the waters of the Flood, them and
all sinners who have not believed the word of God. And to
those who believed the word of their fathers, and did His
Will, no injury came from the waters of the Flood.
Kebra Nagast, 100

According to Enoch, 200 angels descended upon Mt. Ermon and


agreed to take of themselves wives from the daughters of man.
They made mutual imprecations agreeing in pact to commit to the
course of interfering with the affairs of humanity. They knew that
their decision to fornicate with Earthly women would essentially
amount to an unpardonable sin from which there was no turning
back. Regardless, they agreed to assume this path and to deal with
the consequences of it.
It was their invasion that leads to the birth of an abominable race
of bloodthirsty, human-flesh-eating giants that became known as
the men of renown for uncanny size and semi-divine like abilities.

And it came to pass when the children of men had mul-


tiplied that in those days were born unto them beautiful
and comely daughters. And the angels, the children of the
heaven, saw and lusted after them, and said to one another:
Come, let us choose us wives from among the children of
men and beget us children. And Semjaza, who was their
leader, said unto them: I fear ye will not indeed agree to do
this deed, and I alone shall have to pay the penalty of a great
sin. And they all answered him and said: Let us all swear
an oath, and all bind ourselves by mutual imprecations not
to abandon this plan but to do this thing. Then sware they

205 sons of god


all together and bound themselves by mutual imprecations
upon it. And they were in all two hundred; who descended
in the days of Jared on the summit of Mount Hermon, and
they called it Mount Hermon, because they had sworn and
bound themselves by mutual imprecations upon it.
The Book of Enoch, 6:1-7

Once upon the Earth, the fallen watchers join Satan and his min-
ions in meddling into the affairs of humanity. Their intercession led
to every evil abomination being loosed upon the world stage. After
the birth of their hybrid children, the fallen watchers, along with
the rebel angels, set to task establishing themselves as gods to be
worshiped like unto the Most High.
They were the ones responsible for the founding of many of
the early post-flood civilizations such as Atlantis, Sumer, Babylon,
Egypt, and Indian empires. Their access to heavenly wisdom and
knowledge of stars, planets, and harvests made it easy to ascertain
control over human populations and areas. By limiting the amount
and depth of knowledge available, they had an easy time of con-
trolling and manipulating what essentially became reality for the
masses. Their own they would educate through priestly rites of ini-
tiation and limited enrollment into secretive mystery schools.
This allowed them to control the flow of information and what
was available as education to the elect and masses. Control of
knowledge and educational systems easily enabled them to guard
and maintain who would or wouldnt bid their will in serving their
interests against our own. They were and are responsible for having
lead humanity wayward throughout all the generations of human-
kind, duping many cultures and peoples into worshiping false idols.
The main goal of their polytheistic teaching structure has been and
always will be to distort the true prophecies and knowledge of the
one true God and how He has established a plan for creation through
the coming and second coming of Yahushuah Savior Messiah. Not
only are they attempting to keep people from knowing about their

zen garcia 206


Creator, they are also hiding anything that is associated to His Son
and the deliverance of salvation unto the children of this world born
of woman. Their wish is to hide the revelation of the End Times
judgment and take with them to the pits as many flesh-incarnated
souls as possible.
Kingdoms and kingship were fostered as ways to enslave peoples
to the desire and whims of the elect who, more often than not, serve
the bidding of the rebel angels. Since the Tower of Babel attempt,
Lucifer has been deceiving the peoples of the world into setting up
one world order or global governmental type system in which to
oppress the masses. The rebel angels have never had trouble find-
ing those willing to serve evil. Since ancient times a select few have
been confided with hidden knowledge and granted special privilege.
Certain initiates have been utilized by the fallen ones to predict sea-
sons, equinoxes, eclipses, and other celestial phenomenon as a way
to maintain the celebration of certain festivals and times of year.
The prediction of celestial events was utilized to trick the masses
into supporting the often Luciferian blood rites. The divine right of
kings was installed as way of centralizing power into the hands of
those whom had been selected by them to rule with impunity the
extent of their conquered world. The Illuminati families serving the
fallen ones are dedicated to enslaving the masses and controlling us
through trade, commerce, government, politics, and even religion.
Yahweh tolerates their attempt to illustrate to the rest of the world
why He alone is worthy of being worshiped as the Most High God.
Without His just guidance and lawful compassion to rule over
the universes, the natural order would be one of chaos and suffering
in which righteousness, justice, law, order, peace, and harmony could
not exist because of the prevalence of humanity to be led astray in
committing evil. The band of watchers that abandoned their estate
are the sons of God, spoken of in the Book of Enoch.
This same story confirmed by Genesis:

207 sons of god


And it came to pass, when men began to multiply on the
face of the earth, and daughters were born unto them, That
the sons of God saw the daughters of men that they were
fair; and they took them wives of all which they chose.
And the Lord said, My spirit shall not always strive with
man, for that he also is flesh: yet his days shall be an hun-
dred and twenty years. There were giants in the earth in
those days; and also after that, when the sons of God came
in unto the daughters of men, and they bare children to
them, the same became mighty men which were of old,
men of renown. And GOD saw that the wickedness of
man was great in the earth, and that every imagination of
the thoughts of his heart was only evil continually. And it
repented the Lord that he had made man on the earth,
and it grieved him at his heart.
Genesis 6:1-6 (kjv)

The same story from the Book of Jubilees:

And it came to pass when the children of men began to


multiply on the face of the earth and daughters were born
unto them, that the angels of God saw them on a certain
year of this jubilee, that they were beautiful to look upon;
and they took themselves wives of all whom they chose,
and they bare unto them sons and they were Giants.
And lawlessness increased on the earth and all flesh
corrupted its way, alike men and cattle and beasts and
birds and everything that walks on the earth all of them
corrupted their ways and their orders, and they began to
devour each other, and lawlessness increased on the earth
and every imagination of the thoughts of all men (was)
thus evil continually. And God looked upon the earth,
and behold it was corrupt, and all flesh had corrupted its
orders, and all that were upon the earth had wrought all
manner of evil before His eyes.
The Book of Jubilees 5:1-2

zen garcia 208


It is of utmost importance that every seeker delve into the details
of this one story, for in understanding it one will recognize its rela-
tionship to ancient mythology, the origins of evil, and how that evil
came to be reality for humanity. It is absolutely essential to under-
stand who the fallen watchers were and how their meddling led to
the introduction of all abomination on the world stage. In order for
one to understand where we are now and where we are going, one
must comprehend this ancient tale with all of its implications to
understand what humanity will soon be dealing with again as the
Lord predicted that as it was in the days of Noah, so shall it be in
the days of the second coming of the Son of Man.

For owing to these three things came the flood upon


the earth, namely, owing to the fornication wherein the
Watchers against the law of their ordinances went a whor-
ing after the daughters of men, and took themselves wives
of all which they chose: and they made the beginning of
uncleanness. And they begat sons the Naphidim, and they
were all unlike, and they devoured one another: and the
Giants slew the Naphil, and the Naphil slew the Eljo, and
the Eljo mankind, and one man another. And every one
sold himself to work iniquity and to shed much blood,
and the earth was filled with iniquity. And after this they
sinned against the beasts and birds, and all that moves and
walks on the earth: and much blood was shed on the earth,
and every imagination and desire of men imagined vanity
and evil continually.
The Book of Jubilees 7:21

Unless one understands this single aspect of our ancient past, one
will be left in a quandary trying to explicate how evil came into the
world and how weas creatures and a racegot to be where we
are now. And while most would exclude stories of giants as nothing
other than childs lore, skeletons of six-fingered, six-toed giants with
double sets of teeth have been found all over the planet and have

209 sons of god


been alluded to throughout the oral traditions of all cultures living
across the globe.
These ancient tales cite how giants came into being, who their
parents are, and how their evil deeds led directly to the Lord wip-
ing out all flesh in deluge. Most Christians still do not understand
that the flood was brought upon the world by the Lord as judgment
to wipe the Earth clean of abominable human-eating giants. Most
people cannot tell you why the flood was allowed as judgment by
the Lord and why it was that He established a new covenant with
Noah in which He strictly forbid the consumption of any flesh that
had blood within it.

And all the others together with them took unto them-
selves wives, and each chose for himself one, and they
began to go in unto them and to defile themselves with
them, and they taught them charms and enchantments,
and the cutting of roots, and made them acquainted with
plants. And they became pregnant, and they bare great
giants, whose height was three thousand ells: Who con-
sumed all the acquisitions of men. And when men could
no longer sustain them, the giants turned against them
and devoured mankind. And they began to sin against
birds, and beasts, and reptiles, and fish, and to devour one
anothers flesh, and drink the blood. Then the earth laid
accusation against the lawless ones.
The Book of Enoch, 7

A little known Pseudipigraphal book called The Book of the Baruch


not only discusses the results of the deluge and its ravages upon land,
it even mentions in total number how many from the various giant
tribes perished in the flood of Noahs day.
The different translations number the giant dead as being differ-
ent sums, yet these scriptures taken together show just how numer-
ous their numbers were and how the deluge and their presence upon
the globe are tied directly together. Most Christians still assume it

zen garcia 210


was the wickedness of humanity, which ominously set the tone for
the flood, yet this is unfounded as the following scripture will show.

And the angel said to me, Rightly you ask me. When God
made the flood upon the earth, he drowned every firstling,
and he destroyed 104 thousand giants, and the water rose
20 cubits above the mountains, and the water entered into
the garden, bringing out one shoot from the vine as God
withdrew the waters.
Baruch 3:10, Slavonic

And the angel said, Rightly you ask: when God caused the
Flood over the earth and destroyed all flesh and 409,000
giants, and the water rose over the heights 15 cubits, the
water entered Paradise and killed every flower, but it removed
the sprig of the vine completely and brought it outside.
Baruch 4, Greek

Once the planet cried out for respite from the incursion of the watch-
ers, blame is ascribed to various angels who took part in the second
rebellion, and punishment was to be exacted upon them and their
seedline. Without the disclosure of the Book of Enoch we would
not have detail of this incursion nor to whom would we ascribe the
evil we see even today upon the world stage. That is why I recom-
mend to all truth seekers to, in the least, read various extra-biblical
books before placing judgment upon their authenticity or relevance.
It takes much study to fill in the pieces of the jigsaw puzzle that is
truth and that, in seeking, one will be lead to discernment and wis-
dom. Matthew 7:8 instructs, Seek and ye shall find. Knock and the
door shall be opened. For every one that asketh receiveth; and he
that seeketh findeth; and to him that knocketh it shall be opened.

And Azzl taught men to make swords, and knives,


and shields, and breastplates, and made known to them
the metals of the earth and the art of working them, and

211 sons of god


bracelets, and ornaments, and the use of antimony, and the
beautifying of the eyelids, and all kinds of costly stones,
and all colouring tinctures. And there arose much godless-
ness, and they committed fornication, and they were led
astray, and became corrupt in all their ways.
Semjz taught enchantments, and root-cuttings,
Armrs the resolving of enchantments, Barqjl,
(taught) astrology, Kkabl the constellations, Ezql the
knowledge of the clouds, Araqil the signs of the earth,
Shamsil the signs of the sun, and Saril the course of the
moon. And as men perished, they cried, and their cry went
up to heaven.
The Book of Enoch 8:1-2

The rebel angels and fallen watchers are the so-called ancient astro-
nauts that roamed the Earth and solar system in pre-deluge days as
the pantheon of myriad gods worshiped by the Greeks, Romans,
Egyptians, Hindi, and other cultures, which revered multiple gods.
The reason that mythology, no matter which part of the world it is
from, always relates stories about pagan godsand their often rape
or abduction of human women or menis because, like the alien
abduction phenomena of the modern day era, these things are still,
as in our ancient past, happening today.
How can anyone justify such behavior as being linked to so-called
higher beings? Should these beings truly be gods, would not they
behave and act in accordance to the same laws and ordinances that
the Most High has provided to humanity through the gospel and
work of the prophets? Why then would Zeus, the so-called father of
the gods, find it necessary to repeatedly rape Earthly woman when
he is supposed to be some kind of supreme being? Why would a
supreme being need to have anything to do with carnal lust or physi-
cal procreation at all?
It is the interaction of these fallen angels as pagan gods that leads
to the teaching of all sorts of abomination upon the Earth. Their sin

zen garcia 212


is so great that once the Lord does judge them, He will no longer
allow them to supplicate His authority in prayer. As a consequence
of their intrusion He will not forgive them and even took Enoch
from among the children of men to be a witness unto their trans-
gressions. The fallen watchers before the creation of humanity had
free reign to do as they wished upon the Earth.

And then Michael, Uriel, Raphael, and Gabriel looked


down from heaven and saw much blood being shed upon
the earth, and all lawlessness being wrought upon the
earth. And they said one to another: The earth made
without inhabitant cries the voice of their cryingst up to
the gates of heaven. And now to you, the holy ones of
heaven, the souls of men make their suit, saying, Bring our
cause before the Most High. And they said to the Lord of
the ages: Lord of lords, God of gods, King of kings, and
God of the ages, the throne of Thy glory (standeth) unto
all the generations of the ages, and Thy name holy and
glorious and blessed unto all the ages!
Thou hast made all things, and power over all things
hast Thou: and all things are naked and open in Thy sight,
and Thou seest all things, and nothing can hide itself
from Thee. Thou seest what Azazel hath done, who hath
taught all unrighteousness on earth and revealed the eter-
nal secrets which were (preserved) in heaven, which men
were striving to learn: And Semjaza, to whom Thou hast
given authority to bear rule over his associates. And they
have gone to the daughters of men upon the earth, and
have slept with the women, and have defiled themselves,
and revealed to them all kinds of sins. And the women
have borne giants, and the whole earth has thereby been
filled with blood and unrighteousness.
And now, behold, the souls of those who have died
are crying and making their suit to the gates of heaven,
and their lamentations have ascended: and cannot cease
because of the lawless deeds which are wrought on the

213 sons of god


earth. And Thou knowest all things before they come to
pass, and Thou seest these things and Thou dost suffer
them, and Thou dost not say to us what we are to do to
them in regard to these.
The Book of Enoch, 9:1-11

Most people will dismiss these passages as fairy tale or make-


believe, not wanting to look into the literal interpretation of these
stories and what that might entail for seekers of truth. Most can-
not even begin to fathom that angels could somehow rebel against
their sovereign Lord and take wives for themselves from among the
daughters of men, and yet that is the story conveyed by the under-
lying truth that connects all of the gospels. Many people cite this
passage from Matthew 22:30, For in the resurrection they neither
marry, nor are given in marriage, but are as the angels of God in
heaven, when trying to discredit the possibility that angels can have
sex with women, but remember that, according to the Kebra Nagast,
the Watchers implored the Lord to allow them to take on bodies
of flesh, making such copulation a possibility. Even after promising
to uphold their virtue, the Watchers lusted after the daughters of
humanity, for which the Lord would instruct His angels to place
them in darkness and force them to watch the destruction of their
seed until the time of the end when they would be loosed again upon
the world with the Antichrist.
They would, at the end of days, suffer the same death as the
angels, which revolted during the Lucifer rebellion. For their trans-
gression they are not allowed to implore the Lord with prayer and
so ask Enoch to pray to Him on their behalf. The Lord said of
Enochs supplication, They should pray on behalf of humans and
not humans pray on behalf of them.
Though this knowledge may seem more fantasy than reality,
anyone who remotely entertains the possibility that there was
a rebellion of angels against the authority of the Most High
and that these rebel angels may have sired a race of giant, super

zen garcia 214


beings known as men of renownwill recognize that this pos-
sibility goes a long way in explaining the vast amounts of archaeo-
logical phenomena, which modern science still cannot yet explain.
Archeologists are now discovering remnants of civilizations that
appeared suddenly, post deluge, out of seeming nothingness to be
established in all parts of the vast world with similar pyramidal
traits aligned to constellations, and at a time when humans are
thought to have had no advanced technologies. These megalithic
structures were not made by the ancestors of humanity, but by the
hybrid children of the fallen angelsthe giants of old which is
further confirmation of the gospel.
The fact that a race of giants existed sometime in our ancient
past does seem to fit the remaining archaeological evidence. There
are even modern-day reports of giants still living in the land within
Afghanistan, surrounding mountainous region, Patagonia, remote
regions of South America, and especially within the interiors of the
Earth. Barry Chamish, a secular journalist from Israel, wrote and
documented reports of giants landing in Israel from 1986-1999. He
published his articles and eyewitness accounts in a 2010 book enti-
tled The Return of the Giants. In his book, Barry cites the numer-
ous articles he wrote while working as an investigative journalist
during these years. His book asserts that many Isreali citizens not
only reported incidents dealing with either UFO craft or with the
7-foot, round-faced giants cited as occupying them, but that sci-
entific specimens and samples were taken and analyzed every step
of the way to confirm the sightings. I interviewed Barry about
his experience and book, one can find it here for more informa-
tion: http://www.blogtalkradio.com/fallenangelstv/2010/07/17/
barry-chamishreturn-of-the-nephilim
Barrys work verifies that UFOs are associated with giants and
that they are indeed returning. In Are Giants Returning to the
Holy Land? he claims,

215 sons of god


I have had extensive conversations with the contactees
and there is much in common with their stories. That
is fit subject for a separate lecture. In short, all were the
same age, all were white-collar workers, three have been
haunted since their encounters telepathically, all their men
slept through the encounters, two women had mysterious
pregnancies, etc. But the core commonality is that these
women did not know each other and separately described
the same seven-foot tall, bald, round-faced giants.
And if absolute proof that giants were about in Israel
was needed, it came in December in the village of Yatzitz,
twelve miles east of Rishon Letzion. The giants had
opened a new axis after Kadima, a triangle of twenty miles
linking Rishon Letzion, Holon and Yatzitz.
Herzl Casatini, the village security chief, and his friend
Danny Ezra were sharing conversation when they heard
an explosion and felt Ezras house shake. Herzl opened the
door and stood face to face with a nine-foot tall creature
in metallic clothes, whose face was hidden in a haze. He
shut the door and called the police. They arrived and dis-
covered deep boot tracks in the hard mud. The tracks sank
35 centimeters into the ground, meaning whoever made
them had to have literally weighed a ton. Thinking there
might have been a terrorist incursion, the army was called
in. Military trackers were totally stumped. The tracks car-
ried on for eight kilometers. The heel dug in only five
centimeters, meaning that whatever made the tracks was
walking almost on tip-toesif you can call it walking.
Sometimes the distance between tracks was twelve feet,
meaning the intruder was a world-record-holding broad
jumper, weighing about a ton.
The Yatzitz incident confirmed, even to the deep-
est skeptics, that giants were indeed sighted and they left
proof that was nearly impossible to dispute. The best the
Israeli authorities could come up with to explain the tracks
was they were left by an unknown cult. It would have to
be very unknown for records of cults whose ceremonies

zen garcia 216


include dressing as giants and leaving miles of unidentifi-
able tracks are undoubtedly quite rare.

Finally I will share another credible sighting, which occurred in


Voronezh, Russia. First reported in America, October 11, 1989, by
the St. Louis Dispatch, the incident was originally published by the
Russian newspaper TASS. According to the article, on September
27, 1989, at 6:30 P.M, eyewitnesses reported stories of as many as
three different nine-foot tall, three-eyed aliens emerging from a UFO
type craft that had landed on the outskirts of the city. Witnesses
even spoke about a robot accompanying one of the aliens. Testimony
included an entire group of schoolchildren as well as police officers.
The story continues with the school children gathering for a
game of soccer when a faint pink glow descended from the skies
and landed. They saw a three-eyed alien about 10-feet tall, clad
in silvery overalls and bronze-colored boots and wearing a disk on
his chest A boy screamed with fear, but when the alien gazed at
him, with eyes shining, he fell silent, unable to move. Onlookers
screamed, and the UFO and the creatures disappeared.
How would primitive cultures have the ability to construct such
large structures and use blocks of stone, some weighing in excess of
200 tons for construction when even our modern-era heavy con-
struction equipment cannot lift even one of these stones? Who, if
not the rebel angelswith assistance from the fallen Watchers
was responsible for jumping the gun on evolution and bringing from
heaven to Earth knowledge of organized society and civilization?
Knowledge about the rebel angels and the enormity of their
giant children can explain how many ancient sites were constructed
in megalithic fashion when modern technology to this day cannot
match or even equal their feats of accomplishment. Enoch tells us
that it was the fallen watchers who brought to Earth knowledge of
how the mysteries of heaven worked. In utilizing their knowledge,

217 sons of god


they conspired amongst themselves to rule the world, propping
themselves up as the gods to be served in worship.
That is why there is a specific commandment by the Most High
not to worship idols or bow to foreign gods. I knew that I must write
this book now as many people new to these stories may not have
the time to sift through the wealth of information flooding in with
the New Age, and being readily persuaded could risk damning their
souls to hell following false doctrines. Those who follow the self
serving path of Satan, or who are led astray by paganism to worship
the idol gods or fallen angels, will join them in condemnation when
the Lord returns for judgment.
Having researched for the past two decades much of what is
available, as far as ancient mythologies and religions, my hope is to
provide elucidation where one might be confused trying to make
sense of the current revelations coming out from individuals like
Zecharia Sitchin, Michael Tsarion, and others who espouse that the
Annunaki, aliens, or ancient astronauts genetically manipulated our
race and that these extra-terrestrials are our gods.
While I agree that, yes, Annunaki have been and are currently
trying to alter humanity genetically, I will contest that those manip-
ulations were never for the advancement or betterment of human-
kind and that their experiments have only served to dumb down
humanity, making us easier to manage and control. I attest that their
manipulations have only been to oppress the human race at every
step in our evolution and that, in keeping us oppressed, they could
themselves manage control of the planet and its resources.
The fact that humanity still denies their existence, even in the
face of insurmountable evidence, verifies how successful they have
been at concealing their presence from the masses. Regardless, soon
all the peoples of the world will be forced not only to acknowledge
their presence, but to discern as to whether their presence is malevo-
lent or benevolent to our own existence.

zen garcia 218


And he made a plan with his powers. He sent his angels
to the daughters of men, that they might take some of
them for themselves and raise offspring for their enjoy-
ment. And at first they did not succeed. When they had no
success, they gathered together again and they made a plan
together. They created a counterfeit spirit, who resembles
the Spirit who had descended, so as to pollute the souls
through it. And the angels changed themselves in their
likeness into the likeness of their mates (the daughters of
men), filling them with the spirit of darkness, which they
had mixed for them, and with evil. They brought gold
and silver and a gift and copper and iron and metal and
all kinds of things. And they steered the people who had
followed them into great troubles, by leading them astray
with many deceptions. They (the people) became old
without having enjoyment. They died, not having found
truth and without knowing the God of truth. And thus the
whole creation became enslaved forever, from the founda-
tion of the world until now. And they took women and
begot children out of the darkness according to the like-
ness of their spirit. And they closed their hearts, and they
hardened themselves through the hardness of the counter-
feit spirit until now.
The Apocryphon of John

The rebel angels through the elect and divine right of rule were
able to institute a variety of kingdoms and kingships throughout
the world, in which they established their own hybrid seed lines as
vicars to the gods. They did this as a way of manipulating conflict
and as a way of fomenting wars using the ancient Luciferian strategy
of divide and rule. In discerning truth one must be especially care-
ful to not be misled when studying the historical accounts of those
cultures that were under the influence of the fallen Watchers estab-
lished early in Earth history. Those civilizations always depicted
those from heaven who came to the Earth as deliverers of wisdom
and bringers of civilization. Many of these civilizations were organ-

219 sons of god


ized with the purposeful intent of confusing the masses so as to be
able to hide the truth about the Son of God, and the salvation the
Messiah would and did bring to the world. Many of the cultures
that were reseeded by beings from the heavens post deluge ended up
being involved in some way with human sacrifice, blood rituals, and
sometimes even cannibalism. More often than not, those cultures
and civilizationswhich were established by either Lucifer or the
fallen angelswere pervasively involved in what Yahweh termed as
abominable behavior.
And thou shalt not let any of thy seed pass through the fire to
Molech, neither shalt thou profane the name of thy God: I am the
Lord (Leviticus 18:21, kjv).

When thou art come into the land which the Lord thy
God giveth thee, thou shalt not learn to do after the abom-
inations of those nations. There shall not be found among
you any one that maketh his son or his daughter to pass
through the fire, or that useth divination, or an observer of
times, or an enchanter, or a witch, Or a charmer, or a con-
sulter with familiar spirits, or a wizard, or a necromancer.
Deuteronomy 18:9-11 (kjv)

The Pseudipigraphal and apocryphal texts are the scriptural foundation


by which one can fully elucidate the vague account of Genesis 6 and
the fallen angel interdiction into the affairs of humanity. There are liter-
ally multiple passages from multitudinous sources that reveal the same
story as the one related by Enoch. Without knowledge of who the fallen
watchers were and how the behavior of their giant children ties in with
the global deluge, we would simply have no way of comprehending the
ancient world around us. And we definitely would not understand who
and what forces were and are responsible for the evil found in the world
then, now, and until the harvest at the end of days.
At the time of the judgment the righteous elect will receive the
gift of everlasting life and replace the rebel angels fated for destruc-

zen garcia 220


tion that held not their first estate but decided instead to go a
whoring after the daughters of men. Without the clarity of Enoch
exposing the actions of the Fallen Watchers, humanity would be left
in a serious dilemma trying to explicate why God would allow evil
to come about naturally as part of the universal order. The Book of
Enoch tells us that evil is wholly unnatural, that those responsible
for that evil had been allotted only a certain time to exist, and that
once this period of time had passed the Lord would send his Son
Yahushuah Savior Messiah to judge the sins of the world. While
many seekers may consider this revelation too new age or fanciful to
have a basis in reality, the New Testament hints at this same story:

I will therefore put you in remembrance, though ye once


knew this, how that the Lord, having saved the people
out of the land of Egypt, afterward destroyed them that
believed not. And the angels which kept not their first
estate, but left their own habitation, he hath reserved in
everlasting chains under darkness unto the judgment of
the great day. Even as Sodom and Gomorrha, and the
cities about them in like manner, giving themselves over
to fornication, and going after strange flesh, are set forth
for an example, suffering the vengeance of eternal fire.
Likewise also these filthy dreamers defile the flesh, despise
dominion, and speak evil of dignities
Raging waves of the sea, foaming out their own shame;
wandering stars, to whom is reserved the blackness of dark-
ness for ever. And Enoch also, the seventh from Adam,
prophesied of these, saying, Behold, the Lord cometh with
ten thousands of his saints, To execute judgment upon all,
and to convince all that are ungodly among them of all
their ungodly deeds which they have ungodly committed,
and of all their hard speeches which ungodly sinners have
spoken against him.
Jude 1:6-9, 13-15

221 sons of god


For if God spared not the angels that sinned, but cast them
down to hell, and delivered them into chains of darkness, to
be reserved unto judgment; And spared not the old world,
but saved Noah the eighth person, a preacher of righteous-
ness, bringing in the flood upon the world of the ungodly;
And turning the cities of Sodom and Gomorrha into ashes
condemned them with an overthrow, making them an
ensample unto those that after should live ungodly; And
delivered just Lot, vexed with the filthy conversation of the
wicked: (For that righteous man dwelling among them, in
seeing and hearing, vexed his righteous soul from day to
day with their unlawful deeds;) The Lord knoweth how
to deliver the godly out of temptations, and to reserve the
unjust unto the day of judgment to be punished.
2 Peter 2:5-9 (kjv)

For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principali-
ties, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world,
against spiritual wickedness in high places (Ephesians 6:12).

zen garcia 222


The Reality of
the Rulers

Most individuals raised in the modern world have minimal, if any,


contact with what is the considered the supernatural or divine. Most
are raised in worlds where people pursue life through the daily grind
of school, work, family, and simple survival of the fittest. Today,
many have a hard enough time just trying to feed self and family
or draw money enough to pay monthly bills. Most do not have the
luxury of time necessary to seek God in a meaningful way. Survival
has taken precedence over all other pursuits in life, and without time
to seek truth or God, pursuit of the mystical is relegated to a second-
ary priority, if given any priority at all. Life being the way it is, many
will never seek the kingdom or understand the larger questions for
our being here on this planet and at this special time.
Please know that I in no way am belittling or judging how oth-
ers choose to live out their lives; I am simply trying to make a point
that the superficial things that consume the focus of so many can-
not redeem ones spirit for entrance into the kingdom of heaven.
Salvation for those that do their homework is the whole reason for
our being in the flesh at this time. That is why I feel its important
for all of us to take up the cross as much as possible, placing the Lord
first and foremost in life to what degree one can, andin true repent-
ancecry out to the Lord in a way that transforms one to a holy

223
way of life in which Christ can then inhabit the temple of our flesh.
What most do not realize is that our bodies are woven into a multi-
dimensional matrix where the invisible and visible worlds overlap,
allowing us to interact with invisible and visible beings. This world
is a plane of trial and tribulation where those fortunate to incarnate
into flesh would, through lifetime, decide by action, thought, and
behavior just what inheritance will await them at the end of days
when the Lord returns to harvest the spirits of those angels and
humanity that rebelled against Him. As fallen sons of God, we are
inheritors of this temporal world as a result of our ancestors fall into
flesh. Here one must realize that, as entrapped spiritual beings, we
live amongst devils and demons under the rule of Satan.
We are merely visitors to this world of material illusion where
economics, wealth, assets, and money thwart justice and the rule
of law. In this world Satan gives his perverted authority to those
whom he wishes, usually choosing cold-blooded and sadistic indi-
viduals from the Kainite hybrid lines he sired into being to rule and
oppress the sons of Seth. Called the Grail or Merovingian lines, the
descendants claim kinship to Cain, Ham, Tubal-Cain, and Canaan;
they are they whom Satan appoints to occupy various thrones, titles,
presidencies, and prime-ministerships. Those that are the most
sadistic, cruel, cold-hearted, and ready to commit evil are appointed
the arbiters of power and control for the tentacles of the New World
Order. Even today, most of the kings and queens of this world are
blood-related descendants of the line of Cain. They are the syna-
gogue of Satan that say they are Jews but are not that the Lord
speaks about in Revelation 2:9 and 3:9. They are the Rothschild
power behind Zionism and the controllers of the modern-day Israel,
a nation which proudly displays on its flag, the seal of Solomon
the six pointed star of Saturn, Kronos, or Satan.
Its important to understand that the enmity between the seed of
the serpent and the seed of the woman is an ancient war of a spir-
itual nature fought between the angels of Yahweh and the angels of

zen garcia 224


Lucifer, and that we wrestle not against flesh and blood but powers
principalities: the rulers of darkness that are not of this world. The
eye at the top of the Illuminati pyramid, the unseen hand behind the
tentacles of the New World order, the force for who kings, queens,
presidents, and prime ministers dance on a stringis Lucifer the
puppet master, Oz behind the scenes controlling the show and out-
come for his own demented self pleasure. Its my opinion that the
antichrist also, though a system, will be an inter-dimensional being
of supernatural ability possessed directly by the spirit of Lucifer as
Abbaddon, Apollyon. He will return with Niburu, the Wormwood
of Revelation 8, and direct the wrath of the locust army as it devas-
tates and destroys those not written into the Book of Life. Whether
this invasion is of the Nordic giant-humanoid type, dragon-reptoid-
alien-fish type, or predator-insect-locust-breathe-fire-sting-in-
their-tails type of alien, we wont know until the event horizon, yet I
pray daily that the Lord count all of us worthy enough to not be here
for the return of the Nephilim and Niburu.
To understand what we are dealing with in our modern world
as the alien abduction phenomena, seekers must understand the full
meaning and implications of Genesis 6, which discusses the fallen
angels mating with the daughters of Cain and creating a race of
giants as this phenomenon is repeated over and over throughout the
worlds religions and mythologies.
For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principali-
ties, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world,
against spiritual wickedness in high places (Ephesians 6:12, kjv).

On account of the reality of the authorities, (inspired) by


the spirit of the father of truth, the great apostlereferring
to the authorities of the darknesstold us that our con-
test is not against flesh and blood; rather, the authorities
of the universe and the spirits of wickedness. I have sent
this (to you) because you inquire about the reality of the
authorities. Their chief is blind; because of his power and

225 sons of god


his ignorance and his arrogance he said, with his power, It
is I who am God; there is none apart from me.
When he said this, he sinned against the entirety. And
this speech got up to incorruptibility; then there was a
voice that came forth from incorruptibility, saying, You are
mistaken, Samaelwhich is, god of the blind. And this (is
the reason) that you will fight against the powers, because
they do not have rest like you, since they do not wish that
you be saved.
The Letter of Peter to Phillip

According to the word of the Lord, we know that the visible realms
were preceded by the invisible realms and that all things material
had their basis in pure energy, which is the Great Spirit, Great
Mystery, or Father of us all. To better explain the splintering off of
the visible worlds from the invisible, I will relate the story of Sophia
and her fall according to the Gnostic texts. This will help the reader
understand how these teachings tie into and fit with all of the other
available texts out there, including the Old and New Testament,
Apocryphal, and Psuedipigraphal writings.

Then the apostles worshiped again saying, Lord, tell us: In


what way shall we fight against the archons, since the archons
are above us? Then a voice called out to them from the
appearance saying, Now you will fight against them in this
way, for the archons are fighting against the inner man. And
you are to fight against them in this way: Come together and
teach in the world the salvation with a promise. And you, gird
yourselves with the power of my Father, and let your prayer
be known. And he, the Father, will help you as he has helped
you by sending me. Be not afraid, I am with you forever, as
I previously said to you when I was in the body. Then there
came lightning and thunder from heaven, and what appeared
to them in that place was taken up to heaven.
The Letter of Peter to Phillip

zen garcia 226


Many biblical researchers have never heard of Sophia-Pistis and as
such cannot make sense of the stories related by the Nag Hammadi
codices. It is important to note that these teachings come directly
from Yahushuah to the twelve apostles after His resurrection when,
as Christ, He returned to teach the mysteries of heaven before
departing in ascension. These teachings are considered the newest
New Testament apocrypha and cover mysteries, secrets, and insights
that were, as then, mostly untouched by earlier gospels and teach-
ings. Yahushuah even says within these codices that whereas He had
used parables to impart wisdom before, He would now speak plainly
and with precision to His disciples about inheriting the kingdom of
the Father. In the next few chapters I will relate the gnostic story of
creation according to the Nag Hammadi codices to illustrate what
happened during the time and space between the creation of the
heavenly realms and the lower realms.

Mary said to him: Holy Lord, where did your disciples


come from, and where are they going, and (what) should
they do here? The Perfect Savior said to them: I want you
to know that Sophia, the Mother of the Universe and the
consort, desired by herself to bring these to existence with-
out her male (consort).
But by the will of the Father of the Universe, that his
unimaginable goodness might be revealed, he created that
curtain between the immortals and those that came after-
ward, that the consequence might follow [BG 118:]
every aeon and chaosthat the defect of the female might
<appear>, and it might come about that Error would con-
tend with her. And these became the curtain of spirit.
From <the> aeons above the emanations of Light, as I have
said already, a drop from Light and Spirit came down to
the lower regions of Almighty in chaos, that their molded
forms might appear from that drop, for it is a judgment on
him, Arch-Begetter, who is called Yaldabaoth.

227 sons of god


That drop revealed their molded forms through the
breath, as a living soul. It was withered and it slumbered
in the ignorance of the soul. When it became hot from
the breath of the Great Light of the Male, and it took
thought, (then) names were received by all who are in the
world of chaos, and all things that are in it through that
Immortal One, when the breath blew into him. But when
this came about by the will of Mother Sophiaso that
Immortal Man might piece together the garments there
for a judgment on the robbers<he> then welcomed the
blowing of that breath; but since he was soul-like, he was
not able to take that power for himself until the number of
chaos should be complete, (that is,) when the time deter-
mined by the great angel is complete.
The Sophia of Jesus Christ

And when these things had come to pass, then Pistis came
and appeared over the matter of chaos, which had been
expelled like an aborted fetussince there was no spirit in
it. For all of it (chaos) was limitless darkness and bottom-
less water. Now when Pistis saw what had resulted from
her defect, she became disturbed. And the disturbance
appeared, as a fearful product; it rushed to her in the chaos.
She turned to it and blew into its face in the abyss, which
is below all the heavens.
And when Pistis Sophia desired to cause the thing
that had no spirit to be formed into a likeness and to rule
over matter and over all her forces, there appeared for the
first time a ruler, out of the waters, lion-like in appear-
ance, androgynous, having great authority within him, and
ignorant of whence he had come into being. Now when
Pistis Sophia saw him moving about in the depth of the
waters, she said to him, Child, pass through to here, whose
equivalent is yalda baoth.
On The Origin of the World

zen garcia 228


Who was and is Pistis-Sophia? According to Yahushuah, Pistis
Sophia is the sacred daughter, bride, consort, and feminine aspect
of the androgynous holy child Christ. Some texts say that she
descended from the thirteenth aeon, chasing the false light of
Lucifer the fallen cherub, Prince of the air and Lord of the earth. It
is also said that, in her motherly nature, she desired to bring forth a
child. Her desire became so insatiable that Sophia births for herself
an abomination, an aborted fetus of a being that came to be known
as Yaldaboath. After her fall, she was established as the veil between
the higher authorities and the angels of the twelve constellations of
this dimensional reality.

And the Sophia of the Epinoia, being an aeon, conceived


a thought from herself and the conception of the invisible
Spirit and foreknowledge. She wanted to bring forth a like-
ness out of herself without the consent of the Spirit,he
had not approvedand without her consort, and without
his consideration. And though the person of her maleness
had not approved, and she had not found her agreement,
and she had thought without the consent of the Spirit and
the knowledge of her agreement, (yet) she brought forth.
And because of the invincible power which is in her, her
thought did not remain idle, and something came out of
her which was imperfect and different from her appear-
ance, because she had created it without her consort. And
it was dissimilar to the likeness of its mother, for it has
another form. And when she saw (the consequences of )
her desire, it changed into a form of a lion-faced serpent.
And its eyes were like lightning fires which flash. She
cast it away from her, outside that place, that no one of the
immortal ones might see it, for she had created it in igno-
rance. And she surrounded it with a luminous cloud, and
she placed a throne in the middle of the cloud that no one
might see it except the holy Spirit who is called the mother
of the living. And she called his name Yaltabaoth.The
Apocyphon of John

229 sons of god


After the natural structure of the immortal beings
had completely developed out of the infinite, a likeness
then emanated from Pistis (Faith); it is called Sophia
(Wisdom). It exercised volition and became a product
resembling the primeval light. And immediately her will
manifested itself as a likeness of heaven, having an unim-
aginable magnitude; it was between the immortal beings
and those things that came into being after them, like
[]: she (Sophia) functioned as a veil dividing mankind
from the things above.
On the Origin of the World

When light and darkness separated, two opposing sets of ruling


authorities come into being. Satan as Yaldaboath was leader of the
lower angels, which when brought into being did not realize that
there was an invisible hierarchythat far surpassed them in great-
nesshidden everywhere above and around them. Whether he lied
or deceived those angels under his control, the text does not say,
yet we know that he was granted authority over the fallen ones and
that the Bible states that this authority was given to Satan as the
fallen cherub Lucifer. He even tempted the Lord with offering of
the entirety of the world if He would just give reverence to him.
What is most interesting about Yaldaboath, however, is that the
codices attest his being leader of a certain class of angels called the
seraphim. The seraphim were a serpent-reptilian-dragon-like race
of angels that rebelled with Satan. The reason I mention this is
because a lot of so-called experts on the Gnostic texts claim that the
Gnostic community as a whole believe that Yaldaboath is Yahweh of
the Old Testament.
I believe that this lie is being perpetuated by the same forces that
so long ago stripped so much of what is now called apocryphal or
pseudepigrapha books out of what was then the canon of our Bible.
The rulers have always tried to keep knowledge from the masses so
that truth can be hidden and reality determined by the same afore-

zen garcia 230


mentioned controllers. The goal for the Illuminati, as in the past, is
to keep seekers from delving into this information, and prevent any
study of it. The Gnostic texts, for those that read them, refer many
times to the fact that the angels serving Yaldaboath are indeed the
Seraphim Angels. We know that the Seraphim Angels, according to
the Bible, fell with and served under the cherub Lucifer, verifying
that they are both the same being.

But Yaldabaoth possessed a multitude of faces, adding up


to more than all of them, so that when he is in the midst of
the seraphim, he could masquerade in front of them all at
will. He shared with them (portions) from his fire. Because
of the power of the glory which dwells in him from the
light of his Mother. He became Lord over them. Because
of that, he called himself God, and he was not obedient to
the place from which he had come.
On The Origin of the World

But it came to pass in course of time the evil voice (Satan)


encompassed the earth about with serpents that spake like
men and angels, and the serpents made friends with All
Evil, Father of Anramainyus; and the women of the tribes
of Asu went and tempted the first men, the Ihins, whereby
there was born into the world evil offspring.
The Lords Fifth Book

Having fallen, Sophia was established as a veil between the higher


firmament of the invisible, imperishable realms of light and the
lower, visible firmament of perishability until that time when the
male aspect of the Christ, Yahushuah, returns to restore her to full
authority. Most of the gnostic texts say that Sophia matter is the
mother of Yaldaboath, also called Sakla (blind god) and Samael
(angel of death). Yaldaboath, Satan, and Lucifer, areall names of the
same being and refer to the same story.

231 sons of god


According to the codices, Yaldaboath was not witness to the
higher realms coming into being but, as first ruler of the lower vis-
ible realms, created a host of demonic forces which mirrored in dual-
ity the heavenly kingdom.Infused by the power that Sophia sur-
rendered in bringing him to existence as the first child of the lower
order, he believed and announced himself god.

Sophia taketh the lion-faced power of Self-willed for the true


Light. It came to pass then thereafter that she looked below
and saw his light-power in the parts below; and she knew
not that it is that of the triple-powered Self-willed, but she
thought that it came out of the light which she had seen from
the beginning in the height, which came out of the veil of
the Treasury of the Light. And she thought to herself: I will
go into that region without my pair and take the light and
thereout fashion for myself light-ons, so that I may go to
the Light of lights, which is in the Height of heights.
This then thinking, she went forth from her own
region, the thirteenth on, and went down to the twelve
ons. The rulers of the ons pursued her and were enraged
against her, because she had thought of grandeur. And
she went forth also from the twelve ons, and came into
the regions of the chaos and drew nigh to that lion-faced
light-power to devour it. But all the material emanations
of Self-willed surrounded her, and the great lion-faced
light-power devoured all the light-powers in Sophia and
cleaned out her light and devoured it, and her matter was
thrust into the chaos; it became a lion-faced ruler in the
chaos, of which one half is fire and the other darkness,
that is Yaldabaoth, of whom I have spoken unto you many
times. When then this befell, Sophia became very greatly
exhausted, and that lion-faced light-power set to work to
take away from Sophia all her light-powers, and all the
material powers of Self-willed surrounded Sophia at the
same time and pressed her sore.
Pistis Sophia 31

zen garcia 232


We are told by Yahushuah that Pistis Sophia descended toward
Yaldaboath, attempting to retrieve the light that went out of her in
birthing him and all matter into being. She thought that if she could
seize her power that she could return to the height of heights to be
reunited with the light of lights, which she had willingly departed.
Being caught in the lower realms, she finds herself persecuted by
Yaldaboath as he attempts to pilfer all of her power and establish
his own authority among the lower angels. Its my opinion that
Yaldaboath is the Lucifer that Yahushuah witnessed fall like light-
ning from heaven, and whether or not his mind was stripped clean
like humanitys when he fell, he forgot about the authorities above
him, or in arrogance he simply denies them; those that come to be
under his authority are ignorant of those above them and readily
accept Satan as a god, bowing to his rule.

And I was in that region, mourning and seeking after the


light which I had seen in the height. And the guards of the
gates of the ons searched for me, and all who remain in
their mystery mocked me. But I looked up unto the height
towards thee and had faith in thee.
Now, therefore, O Light of lights, I am sore pressed
in the darkness of chaos. If now thou wilt come to save
me,great is thy mercy,then hear me in truth and save
me. Save me out of the matter of this darkness, that I may
not be submerged therein, that I may be saved from the
emanations of god Self-willed which press me sore, and
from their evil doings. Let not this darkness submerge me,
and let not this lion-faced power entirely devour the whole
of my power, and let not this chaos shroud my power.
Hear me, O Light, for thy grace is precious, and look
down upon me according to the great mercy of thy Light.
Turn not thy face from me, for I am exceedingly tor-
mented. Haste thee, hearken unto me and save my power.
Pistis Sophia

233 sons of god


This is the first archon who took a great power from his
mother. And he removed himself from her and moved
away from the places in which he was born. He became
strong and created for himself other aeons with a flame
of luminous fire which (still) exists now. And he joined
with his arrogance which is in him and begot authorities
for himself.
Apocryphon of John

Having been cast out of the higher realms and having cre-
ated a whole host of lower order demons, Yaldaboath con-
siders himself the godof all. He then, with his demons,
further oppresses Sophia, attempting to steal the spark of
divine light in her, which is the Father. Yaldaboath, like a
vampire, slowly drained her of her light until she began
to feel that she would be extinguished from existence
altogether and, desperate to repent, called upon the light
of lights, pleading the Father to send His Son Christ to
redeem her of her fallen state.

This ruler, by being androgynous, made himself a vast


realm, an extent without limit. And he contemplated cre-
ating offspring for himself, and created for himself seven
offspring, androgynous just like their parent. And he said
to his offspring, It is I who am god of the entirety.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

But Yaltabaoth had a multitude of faces, more than all


of them, so that he could put a face before all of them,
according to his desire, when he is in the midst of seraphs.
He shared his fire with them; therefore he became lord
over them. Because of the power of the glory he possessed
of his mothers light, he called himself God. And he did
not obey the place from which he came. And he united
the seven powers in his thought with the authorities which
were with him.
Apocryphon of John

zen garcia 234


And they were completed from this heaven to as far up
as the sixth heaven, namely that of Sophia. The heaven
and his earth were destroyed by the troublemaker that
was below them all (Destruction of Tiamat). And the
six heavens shook violently; for the forces of chaos knew
who it was that had destroyed the heaven that was below
them. And when Pistis knew about the breakage result-
ing from the disturbance, she sent forth her breath and
bound him and cast him down into Tartaros. Since that
day, the heaven, along with its earth, has consolidated itself
through Sophia the daughter of Yaldabaoth, she who is
below them all.
On the Origin of the World

Manuscript B
Fragment 1
(9) [ 1 saw Watchers]
(10) in my vision, the dream-vision. Two (men) were
fighting over me, saying
(11) and holding a great contest over me. I asked them,
Who are you, that you are thus empo[wered over me?
They answered me, We]
(12) [have been em]powered and rule over all man-
kind. They said to me, Which of us do yo[u choose to
rule (you)? I raised my eyes and looked.]
(13) [One] of them was terr[i]fying in his appearance,
[like a serpent, [his] cl[oa]k many-colored yet very dark
(14) [And I looked again], and in his appearance,
his visage like a viper, and [wearing ]
15) [exceedingly, and all his eyes ]

Fragment 2
(1) [ em]powered over you
(2) [I replied to him,] This [Watcher,] who is he? He
answered me, This Wa[tcher ]

235 sons of god


(3) [and his three names are Belial and Prince of
Darkness] and King of Evil. I said, My lord, what
dom[inion ?]
(4) [and his every way is darkened, his every work
da[rk]ened. In Darkness he
(5) [Yo]u saw, and he is empowered over all Darkness,
while I [am empowered over all light.]
(6) [ from] the highest regions to the lowest I rule
over all Light, and over al[1 that is of God. I rule over
(every) man]
Testament of Amram

zen garcia 236


Flying Fiery Serpents

Recently one of my Bulgarian listeners, Alexander Beatus, sent to


me an interesting text that has not even yet been released to Western
culture in English translation. Dr. Stephen Guide, in his series enti-
tled The Thracian Script Decoded Books One through Four, deciphered
the ancient Thracian hieroglyphic writing system, which he claims
precedes Sumerian cuneiform by 1,000 to 1,500 years. In decod-
ing this script we are introduced to the first post-flood civilization
established after the biblical deluge of Noahs day. He also reveals a
text written by a Thracian king named Sitarih (i.e., Sitalkes/Sitalk)
dated 424-431 Bc called The Book of Atam and Eua. My new friend
Alexander has taken it upon himself to translate this book into
English and, having known about my keen interest in ancient texts,
asked me to look it over to see what I thought.
As I read through, to my surprise I found in this very ancient text
that the serpent in paradise, the nachash of Genesis 3 that everybody
equates to being a simple snake, is referred to as being a flying snake,
a winged serpent, and the guardian of the tree of the Tree of the
Knowledge of Good and Evil. This reference led me to take a closer
examination of the word nachash and its uses in context to other
serpentine references found throughout the word. I discovered that
the word nachash (naw-khash) has special relationship to the flying
fiery serpents mentioned in Isaiah, the dragons of Arabia as men-
tioned in 2 Esdras 15, and the cockatrice also mentioned in Isaiah.
The cockatrice, according to Wikipedia, is a legendary creature that

237
is essentially a two-legged dragon with a roosters head. It is also
related to the pheonix of egyptian mythology and the basilisk, which
is depicted as king of the serpents, an upright serpent being with
power to kill by fright and able to breathe fire.

There is the same power also in the serpent called the basi-
lisk. It is produced in the province of Cyrene, being not
more than twelve fingers in length. It has a white spot on
the head, strongly resembling a sort of a diadem. When
it hisses, all the other serpents fly from it: and it does not
advance its body, like the others, by a succession of folds,
but moves along upright and erect upon the middle. It
destroys all shrubs, not only by its contact, but those even
that it has breathed upon; it burns up all the grass too, and
breaks the stones, so tremendous is its noxious influence.
The Natural History

The reference in the Book of Atam and Eua to the nachash as being
a winged serpent or phoenix-like creature also lead me to look
deeper into the word saraph, or seraph, which in Sanskrit means
reptile with plural seraphim meaning an order of angelic being.
Saraf, saraph, and seraph are all singular forms of the word sera-
phim, which also means burning ones and is synonymous with the
word nachash, or serpent translated into English from the Hebrew.
Dr. Henery M. Morris confirms in his book The Genesis Record that
some scholars like myself assert nachash originally meant upright,
shining creature and that the word is associated with an angel or
divine being who was also an enchanter.
Its important to understand that when we speak about the
nachash, saraph, or seraphim that we address the distinctions
between a snake and this supposed serpentine being. The serpent
mentioned in Genesis 3 was a very special type of reptile in that this
creature stood upright, was endowed with reason, and had the ability
to communicate with Eve in language and dialogue. Not only was

zen garcia 238


this nachash endowed with these certain traits, it is also mentioned
as being the most cunning of the Lords creatures in its ability to
beguile or seduce others into committing sin. The serpent depicted
in the garden was more like the basilisk than a snake and was associ-
ated also to seraphim, the six-winged celestial angels that had once
served before the face of the Lord, but being led in rebellion by
Lucifer became those rebel angels which lost their first estate dur-
ing the prior rebellion and war in heaven, which occurred during
the First World Age. These angels were later joined by the fallen
Watchers that fell during the time of Jared, which occurred after the
creation of modern day Adam and Eve and advent of the Second
World Age. The seraphim angels are the nachash, dragon angels
that were banished from the upper heavens by Michael and the
cherubim. This order of angels is also cited in the Book of Enoch as
being the drakones (drakones serpents).
In Hebrew nachash is translated shine as in the shine of brass,
or whisper like in the subtle chanting of an incantation or conjur-
ing of enchantment. The nachash was not and is not a literal snake,
especially in the sense of a snake that has no arms and legs and
moves about on its belly; this Nachash was, in a literal sense, a shin-
ing enchanter capable of shrewd (smooth or slick) behavior that he
utilized in deceiving Eve. I firmly believe that this nachash was as
suggested, an angel diviner or enchanter who, as guardian of the tree
of the knowledge of good and evil, beguiled Eve into initially eating
the forbidden fruit. It was only after the seduction of Eve and her
sharing sin with Adam that this serpent was then placed on its belly,
meaning that it had prior been able to walk upright before the curse,
which stripped it of its limbs. In his curse upon the serpent, the
Lord also condemned this nachash to then feed off of the dust of the
earth. I believe this dust is symbolic of the dust that Adams physical
body was made fromashes to ashes, dust to dustand that what
the Lord was alluding to in this particular passage was the fact that
these dragon lords not only feed on the flesh and blood of humanity,

239 sons of god


but also demand from those that worship them the sacrifice of inno-
cent human victims that they then also feed upon in frenzied ritual
any time the blood of innocents is shed upon the Earth.

Aye, when the blood was offered, forth came they to dwell
among men.In the form of man moved they amongst us,
but only to sight where they as are men. Serpent-headed
when the glamour was lifted but appearing to man as men
among men. Crept they into the Councils, taking forms
that were like unto men. Slaying by their arts the chiefs
of the kingdoms, taking their form and ruling oer man.
Only by magic could they be discovered. Only by sound
could their faces be seen. Sought they from the kingdom
of shadows to destroy man and rule in his place.
Emerald Tablet 8

In studying the roots of serpent worship around the world, one will
find the same story being related worldwide. Those cultures that
worshiped the fallen angels as a pantheon of gods were often the
ones that received high knowledge and instruction on elevating their
civilization from beings that were reported as holding serpentine
form, much like Quetzlcoatl and Kulkulcan. The feathered serpent
is just one of the embodiments of the ancient nachash.
The roots of serpent worship precede the flood and even the
creation of modern humanity upon this planet. Post flood it was the
descendents of Ham, specifically the Canaanites, that were respon-
sible for the re-institution of serpent worship, idolatry, and rever-
ence of these fallen beings guised as the benefactors and providers of
humanity post-flood.

And he found a writing which former (generations) had


carved on the rock, and he read what was thereon, and he
transcribed it and sinned owing to it; for it contained the
teaching of the Watchers in accordance with which they
used to observe the omens of the sun and moon and stars

zen garcia 240


in all the signs of heaven. 4. And he wrote it down and said
nothing regarding it; for he was afraid to speak to Noah
about it lest he should be angry with him on account of it.
Jubilees 8

One can read about and trace the roots of serpent worship and idol-
atry to the earliest post-flood civilizations in a book called Worship of
the Serpent Traced through the World and Its Traditions Referred to the
Events in Paradise, written by John Bathurst Deane and published
in 1860, for more information on the things that I have and will be
mentioning here.
The nachash are the fallen angels known to us as the seraphim.
They are the dragons of old, which kept not their first estate and
who also established idolatry as a way to usurp the worship of the
only true God, the Most High, and Creator of us all. This decep-
tion would serve to not only lead the world astray but would feed
Satan and the fallen ones with the veneration they so lavishly desire
in their pursuit to be as gods themselves. Idolatry as spoken of in
the Wisdom of Solomon is the root of all confusion and sin. Unless
one understands that idolatry is associated to the worship of these
dragon lords as gods, and that this worship is directly associated to
the beguiling of Eve by the nachash of Genesis 3, one would not
know why the Lord hates idolatry as an institution and why the first
two commandments of the ten commandments has to do with idol-
atry and the worship of foreign gods in placing others before Him.
Another incident of particular interest associated with the
nachash is a rebellion mentioned as having taken place during the
Exodus from Egypt under the leadership of Moses and Aaron by
the children of Ham who, like the people of Egypt, worshiped ser-
pents as their gods. The Egyptian gods, like the pagan gods of other
nations, were the hybrid demigods born from the copulation of
angels with the daughters of men. In the earliest days of our ances-
tors, the fallen ones appointed themselves rule over the vast cultures

241 sons of god


and civilizations that were then springing up world-wide; they were
the ones that spawned the hybrid royal lines celebrated throughout
all pagan nations and religions as the overseers of humanity. Those
that look into these connections will find that the Egyptian gods,
as well as the pharaohs that ruled over Egypt, are often depicted as
partially serpentine or are depicted with serpents relating their asso-
ciation to and reverence for the nachash of Genesis 3.
The children of Ham, for their rebellion, were punished by the
reptilian beings that they had then worshiped. For such trespass the
Lord allowed the nachash that they worshiped to punish them much
like that which will be repeated with the return and release of the
locust army to be unveiled with the release of the four angels from
the river Euphrates at the end of days. The locust army will, at that
time, serve as a repeat of this particular incident in that they will also
be released to punish those that still worshiped these serpent beings
as the returning Annunaki star gods.
The serpents that were sent against the children of Ham as pun-
ishment were not snakes in the traditional sense of the word as the
nachash of Genesis 3 was also not a simple snake. The serpents of
the locust army will also not be simple snakes but will be supernatu-
ral beings utilized by the Lord to punish those not written into the
Book of Life as a repeat of what happened during the Exodus.

In return for their foolish and wicked thoughts, which


led them astray to worship irrational serpents and worth-
less animals, thou didst send upon them a multitude of
irrational creatures to punish them, that they might learn
that one is punished by the very things by which he sins.
For thy all-powerful hand, which created the world out
of formless matter, did not lack the means to send upon
them a multitude of bears, or bold lions, or newly created
unknown beasts full of rage, or such as breathe out fiery
breath, or belch forth a thick pall of smoke, or flash ter-
rible sparks from their eyes; not only could their damage

zen garcia 242


exterminate men, but the mere sight of them could kill
by fright.
Wisdom of Solomon 11

Notice in this passage that Solomon speaks of these serpentine


beings as being able to breathe out fire and belch forth a thick pall
of smoke and that these beings also have the ability to send forth
sparks from their eyes in such a capacity that they can even exter-
minate men by the mere sight of their frightening appearance. The
locust army of Revelation 9 is also described:

Out of their mouths issued fire and smoke and brimstone.


By these three was the third part of men killed, by the fire,
and by the smoke, and by the brimstone, which issued out
of their mouths. For their power is in their mouth, and in
their tails: for their tails were like unto serpents, and had
heads, and with them they do hurt. And the rest of the
men which were not killed by these plagues yet repented
not of the works of their hands, that they should not wor-
ship devils, and idols of gold, and silver, and brass, and
stone, and of wood: which neither can see, nor hear, nor
walk: Neither repented they of their murders, nor of their
sorceries, nor of their fornication, nor of their thefts.
Revelation 9

Notice that at the end of days the locust army will be sent by the
Lord to torment those excluded from salvation that are not written
into the Book of Life. This will include the lines of Cain who are
the children of the devil that are the hierarchy of the New World
order, led by the hybrid blood royal elites. They are those whom
shall suffer the anguish of wanting to die but are not allowed to. It
is my contention that just as the children of Ham were punished by
the fiery serpents during the tribulation of the Exodus, the children
of Cainwho rule on the thrones of the world todaywill also be
punished by these same serpent-locust beings. The locust army of

243 sons of god


Joel 2 and Revelation 9 are released with the loosening of the four
angels who were long ago bound in the river Euphrates.
These supernatural beings were detained for specific time and
reason, and when the day of the Lord is at hand these star-gods will
unveil themselves as the saviors, benefactors, and creators of what
will be a devastated and destroyed humanity eager for global resolu-
tion. The antichrist will be one of these supernatural beings able to
offer up global resolutions to solve our planetary ails. Whether the
antichrist unveils himself as a physical flesh human or literally as a
supernatural dragon-giant-like being, we wont know until that day
and that hour; however, I do believe that the locust army will return
with the unveiling of the false Christ.
The big lie that deceives even the most elect, should it be possible,
is that these beings are our creators and benefactors when, through-
out the duration of human history, they have worked to deceive
and lead astray the children of Adam and even sought to prevent
the birth of the messiah through the womans seed. The word has
warned us since time immemorial that this would be the end game
for these beings and their antichrist. In fact, the sign of Revelation
12, And there appeared a great wonder in heaven; a woman clothed
with the sun, and the moon under her feet, and upon her head a
crown of twelve stars: And she being with child cried, travailing in
birth, and pained to be delivered is a sign to the fallen ones that
their time is up. This sign is also a warning to humanity that the
locust army would soon return to bring great destruction such as has
not been known since the destruction of the First World Age.
In the next part of this chapter I would like to introduce the
reader to important insight from a South African Zulu sangoma
named Credo Mutwa, born July 21, 1920, to a Christian father and
Zulu mother. At the age of fourteen, Credo was initiated by one
of his grandfathers daughters, a sangoma herself taught by Credos
grandfather, an elder in traditional African wisdom.

zen garcia 244


He has conducted a few very profound interviews with David
Icke and Rick Martin which, taken in tangent, provided profound
insight into the ancient history of this planet and its interactions
with the ancient reptilian race I term the nachash. In his traditional
knowledge, Credo alludes to Satan as being a serpent, an enchanter
much like the nachash as described in Genesis 3 and Wisdom of
Solomon. In his tribal tongue the nachash are called the Chitauri or
Chitauli, which means the dictators, the ones who tell us the law.
Referred to as Jabulon in his tradition, Satan isaccording to his
peoplethe king of the Chitauli who, like the basilisk or Medusa
of Greek mythology, possesses the power to kill humans by sight.
Indoctrinated into legends, mythologies, and ancient traditions, we
are not privy to hear the knowledge that Credo retains, which
if delved intowill confirm the biblical account of these ancient
dragon beings having been here long before modern humanitys
presence upon this planet.

But, when the Chitauri arrived in Africa they told our peo-
ple that they were gods and that they were going to give
us human beings great gifts on one conditon. We had to
worship them and accept them as our creators. Some told
our people that they were our elder brothers and that this
Earth had produced them generations ago. And they said
they had come back to the green womb of their mother
and that they were going to make us into gods.
Jabulon, sir, is a very strange god. He is supposed to
be the leader of the Chitauli. He is a god, to my great
surprise, which I find certain groups of White people,
especially, worshipping. We have known about Jabulon
for many, many centuries, we Black people. But I am
surprised that there are White people who worship this
god, and these people, amongst them are people whom
many have blamed for all the things that have happened
on this Earth, namely, the Freemason people. We believe
that Jabulon is the leader of the Chitauli. He is the Old

245 sons of god


One. And one of his names, in the African language, sir, is
Umbaba-Samahongo-the lord king, the great father of the
terrible eyes-because we believe that Jabulon has got one
eye which, if he opens it, you die if he looks at you.
Before human beings were created on this planet,
there had existed a very wise race of people known as the
Imanyukela. These people had come from the constella-
tion known to white people as Orion, and they had inhab-
ited our earth for thousands and thousands of years. And
that before they had left our earth to return once more to
the sacred Spider constellation, they made a great evacua-
tion under the earth, beneath the Ruwensory Mountains-
the Mountains of the Moon. And deep in the bowels of
Mother Earth, the Imanyukela built a city of copper build-
ings. A city with a wall of silver all around it. A city built
at the huge mountain of pure crystal. The mountain of
knowledge. The mountain from which all knowledge on
earth comes. And a mountain to which all knowledge on
earth ultimately returns.
No matter where you go in Africa, no matter how deep
into the interior of the dark continent you tread, you will
find very ancient stories which are incredibly similar. You
will find African tribes and races who will tell you that
they are descendants from gods who came out of the skies
thousands of years ago. Some, however, say that theses
gods came to them from the sea in magical boats made
out of reeds or wood or copper or even gold. In some cases
these gods and goddesses are described as beautiful human
beings whose skins were either bright blue or green or even
silver. But most of the time you will find it being said these
great gods, especially the ones that came out of the sky
were non human, scaly creatures, which lived most of the
time in mud or in water. Creatures of an extremely fright-
ening and hideously ugly appearance. Some say that these
creatures were like crocodiles, with crocodile like teeth and
jaws, but with very large round heads. Some say that these
creatures are very tall beings with snake like heads, set on

zen garcia 246


long thin necks, very long arms and very long legs. There
are those that tell us that these gods who came from the
skies traveled through the land in magical boats made of
bright metal, silver, copper or gold. Boats which had the
ability to sail over water or even to fly through the sky like
birds.
Throughout Africa we are told that these mysterious
beings taught human beings many things. They taught
human beings how to have laws, knowledge of herbal
medicine, knowledge of arts and knowledge of the myster-
ies of creation and the cosmos as a whole. We are told that
some of these gods had the ability to change their shapes
at will. They had the ability to assume the shape and the
appearance of any creature that there is on earth whenever
they had good reason to do so. A sky god could even turn
itself into a rhinoceros and elephant or even a stork, a sky
god could even turn itself into a rock or even a tree.
In Africa these mysterious gods are known by various
names, in West Africa, in the land of the Bumbara peo-
ple these amphibian or reptilian sky gods are known as
Zishwezi. The word zishwezi means either the swimmers
or the divers or the gliders. It was said that these sky gods
could dive from above the clouds down to the top of a
mountain whenever they felt like it, they could also take
deep dives into the bottom of the ocean and from there
fetch magical objects and then bring them to the shore,
placing them at the feet of the astonished black people.
In the land of the Dogon people we find the famous
Nommo, a race of reptilian or amphibian beings who were
said to have come from the Sirius star to give knowledge
and religion to the black people of Dogon. One is told
that when the Nommo arrived from the sky in their fan-
tastic sky ship, there were several of them, thirteen or four-
teen of them. And they created a lake around their sky ship
and every morning they used to swim from their sky ship
to the shores of the lake and there preach to the people
who assembled in large numbers around the lake. It is said

247 sons of god


that before the Nommo departed, returning with a great
noise back to their home star, they first chose one of their
number, killed it and cut its body up into little pieces and
then gave these pieces to the assembled people to eat in
the first sacrificial ritual of its kind on earth. When the
people had eaten the sacred flesh of the star creature and
drunk its blood mixed with water, the Nommo took the
lower jaw of their creature and by some incredible fact of
magic brought the whole creature back to life again. We
are told that this is the way that the Nommo taught our
people that there is no death and that behind every death
there shall be a resurrection.
In the Americas, in South and Central America mostly,
the feathered serpent is called Quetzlcoatl, and amongst
my people, the Zulus, we find belief in a serpent called
Yndlondlo. The Yndlondlo is said to be a huge mamba
or a huge python, whose neck is covered in greyish blue
feathers, like the feathers of a blue crane, and at the top
of the serpents head grow three feathers. One green one,
one red one and a white one which look like huge ostrich
tail feathers. The Yndlondlo, like the (South) American
Quetzlcoatl, is associated with God the Son.
Credo Mutwa

I would like to highlight a few things that Credo spoke about in


this testimony. First notice that the Chitauri or Chitauli, like the
Annunaki and Nephilim, are reptilian in nature and descend from
the skies to the Earth to initiate formal contacts with pre-adamic
human cultures still undeveloped in technology and organizational
structure. The assistance of the fallen ones to primitive pre-adamic
cultures became essential for the quick advancement and estab-
lishment for what became complex and highly organized socie-
ties. Fostering development, the fallen ones raised civilizations into
ancient empires sophisticated in societal construction and complex
civil planning. These pyramidal, ziggurat looking, megalithic type
structures and cities of grand size were simultaneously established

zen garcia 248


on every continent on the planet and by peoples science claims
were supposedly working with only stone implements? It was fallen
angelic knowledge and ability that propelled cultures to rise in quick
advancement. The pre-adamic peoples who were fostered by the
Annunaki, not knowing any better, accepted and worshiped them as
their gods. Like Adam and Eve of paradise, the pre-adamic peoples
could not comprehend the circumstances of the situation that they
found themselves in, for why would anybody worship as god a being
which demands blood ritual, victim sacrifice, and often cannibalis-
tic behavior?
Another thing of keen interest, which Credo alludes to, is the
group of occult elitist whom weve come to know as the Freemasons.
He claims that some members of these secret societies not only know
about the nachash, but also worship them, especially the ancient
serpent known to Credos people as Jabulon. This Jabulon is said to
be king of the dragons and in possession of the ability to kill other
creatures by sight. Jabulon is the great dragon that was cast out on
the second day. He is the old serpent that Revelation 12:9 called the
Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out
into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him.
Credos, as well as other African oral traditions, especially that of
the Dogon tribe, relate these beings as coming from Orion and hav-
ing lived here on the planet prior to the appearance of modern-day
humanity upon the Earth. Also mentioned are their construction of
the underground cities and tunnel systems that lead to and inter-
connect various underground cities and bases claimed by many to be
in existence. Credo says of the old gods that they were frightening in
appearance and that they resembled crocodiles that walked upright
and erect, much like the reference to the nachash of Genesis chapter
3. One can hear, in Credos oral traditions and mythology, confirma-
tion of this species of being as having existed as part of the natural
world experience. Notice also that Credo suggests their use of magi-
cal boats andlike the Bible confirmsshape-shifting abilities.

249 sons of god


And while modern-day humanity might consider the existence of
such intelligent, reptilian like entities to be fringe lunacy, the under-
lying truth is these beings have been with us for a very long time.
Another intriguing aspect of Credos testimony is that it aligns
with the 36,000 bc testimony of Thoth, the Atlantean Priest-King,
who describedin the Emerald Tablets of Thothhow his peo-
ple, the Atlanteans, had become involved with serpent-like, interdi-
mensional beings. It was these beings, cited as the sons of Belial or
sons of darkness, that taught them the ritual of star-gates and higher
dimensional doorways, which resulted in their releasing uncontrol-
lable cataclysm upon the world, which affects us even to this day.
This interaction resulted in the destruction of what was then the
golden age of Atlantis and its archipelago empire.
Of particular interest throughout the texts are the several pas-
sages referring to the dragon Annunaki angels as having the abil-
ity to possess bodies, absorb personalities, and even embody human
world leaders and rulers in establishing their hidden rule over the
children of men. It was the nachash that led the Atlanteans to their
ultimate demise as a people and nation. Thoth gives us detail in this
text that again confirms the esoteric reality of the dragon lords and
how their ancient race preceded that of modern humanity.
These tablets also grant us insight into the historical destruction
of Atlantis and how Thoth and his priesthood remnant were sent
to the children of Khem to assist in the construction of the Great
Pyramid of Giza. It would be his interdiction with the Egyptians,
which would elevate their knowledge and capacity as a people
increasing their stature within the world. There are few particular
passages Id like to highlight from these tablets to grant the reader
further insight into what I have been discussing here.

Great were my people in the ancient days, great beyond


the conception of the little people now around me; know-
ing the wisdom of old, seeking far within the heart of

zen garcia 250


infinity knowledge that belonged to Earths youth. Wise
were we with the wisdom of the Children of Light who
dwelt among us. Strong were we with the power drawn
from the eternal fire. And of all these, greatest among the
children of men was my father, Thotmes, keeper of the
great temple, link between the Children of Light who
dwelt within the temple and the races of men who inhab-
ited the ten islands. Mouthpiece, after the three, of the
Dweller of Unal, speaking to the Kings with the voice that
must be obeyed.
Grew I there from a child into manhood, being taught
by my father the elder mysteries, until in time there grew
within the fire of wisdom, until it burst into a consum-
ing flame. Naught desired I but the attainment of wisdom.
Until on a great day the command came from the Dweller
of the Temple that I be brought before him. Few there
were among the children of men who had looked upon
that mighty face and lived, for not as the sons of men are
the Children of Light when they are not incarnate in a
physical body.
Chosen was I from the sons of men, taught by the
Dweller so that his purposes might be fulfilled, purposes
yet unborn in the womb of time. Long ages I dwelt in
the Temple, learning ever and yet ever more wisdom,
until I, too, approached the light emitted from the great
fire. Taught me he, the path to Amenti, the underworld
where the great king sits upon his throne of might. Deep I
bowed in homage before the Lords of Life and the Lords
of Death, receiving as my gift the key of Life. Free was I
of the Halls of Amenti, bound not by death to the circle
of life. Far to the stars I journeyed until space and time
became as naught. Then having drunk deep of the cup of
wisdom, I looked into the hearts of men and there found
I greater mysteries and was glad. For only in the Search
for Truth could my Soul be stilled and the flame within
be quenched.

251 sons of god


Down through the ages I lived, seeing those around
me taste of the cup of death and return again in the light
of life. Gradually from the Kingdoms of Atlantis passed
waves of consciousness that had been one with me, only to
be replaced by spawn of a lower star.
In obedience to the law, the word of the Master grew
into flower. Downward into darkness turned the thoughts
of the Atlanteans, until at last in his wrath arose from his
Agwanti, the Dweller, (this word has no English equiva-
lent; it means a state of detachment) speaking The Word,
calling the power. Deep in Earths heart, the sons of
Amenti heard, and hearing, directed the changing of the
flower of fire that burns eternally, changing and shifting,
using the Logos, until that great fire changed its direction.
Over the world then broke the great waters, drown-
ing and sinking, changing Earths balance until only the
Temple of Light was left standing on the great mountain
on Undal still rising out of the water; some there were who
were living, saved from the rush of the fountains.
Called to me then the Master, saying: Gather ye
together my people. Take them by the arts ye have learned
of far across the waters, until ye reach the land of the hairy
barbarians, dwelling in caves of the desert. Follow there
the plan that ye know of.
Gathered I then my people and entered the great ship
of the Master. Upward we rose into the morning. Dark
beneath us lay the Temple. Suddenly over it rose the
waters. Vanished from Earth, until the time appointed,
was the great Temple.
Fast we fled toward the sun of the morning, until
beneath us lay the land of the children of Khem. Raging,
they came with cudgels and spears lifted in anger seeking
to slay and utterly destroy the Sons of Atlantis. Then raised
I my staff and directed a ray of vibration, striking them
still in their tracks as fragments of stone of the mountain.
Then spoke I to them in words calm and peaceful, telling
them of the might of Atlantis, saying we were children of

zen garcia 252


the Sun and its messengers. Cowed I them by my display
of magic-science, until at my feet they groveled, when I
released them.
Long dwelt we in the land of Khem, long and yet long
again. Until obeying the commands of the Master, who
while sleeping yet lives eternally, I sent from me the Sons
of Atlantis, sent them in many directions that from the
womb of time wisdom might rise again in her children.
Long time dwelt I in the land of Khem, doing great
works by the wisdom within me. Upward grew into the
light of knowledge the children of Khem, watered by the
rains of my wisdom. Blasted I then a path to Amenti so
that I might retain my powers, living from age to age a Sun
of Atlantis, keeping the wisdom, preserving the records.
Great grew the sons of Khem, conquering the people
around them, growing slowly upwards in Soul force. Now
for a time I go from among them into the dark halls of
Amenti, deep in the halls of the Earth, before the Lords of
the Powers, face to face once again with the Dweller.
Raised I high over the entrance, a doorway, a gateway
leading down to Amenti. Few there would be with cour-
age to dare it, few pass the portal to dark Amenti. Raised
over the passage, I, a mighty pyramid, using the power
that overcomes Earth force (gravity). Deep and yet deeper
placed I a force-house or chamber; from it carved I a circu-
lar passage reaching almost to the great summit. There in
the apex, set I the crystal, sending the ray into the Time-
Space, drawing the force from out of the ether, concentrat-
ing upon the gateway to Amenti. (See The Great Pyramid
by Doreal.)
Other chambers I built and left vacant to all seeming,
yet hidden within them are the keys to Amenti. He who
in courage would dare the dark realms, let him be purified
first by long fasting. Lie in the sarcophagus of stone in my
chamber. Then to reveal I to him the great mysteries. Soon
shall he follow to where I shall meet him, even in the dark-

253 sons of god


ness of Earth shall I meet him, I, Thoth, Lord of Wisdom,
meet him and hold him and dwell with him always.
Built I the Great Pyramid, patterned after the pyra-
mid of earth force, burning eternally so that it, too, might
remain through the ages. In it, I built my knowledge of
Magic-Science so that it might be here when again I return
from Amenti. Aye, while I sleep in the Halls of Amenti,
my Soul roaming free will incarnate, dwell among men in
this form or another. (Hermes, thrice-born.)
Emerald Tablet 1

The 1st Tablet begins with Thoths testimony that he is one of the
survivors of the destruction that sank Atlantis, one of the masses
of the ten island archipelago empire. In Greek mythology, it is
Poseidonotherwise known as the Sumerian Enkiwho takes a
human spouse as wife, birthing into being the demigod Atlantean
kings. Plato, in his work Timaes, speaks of the children of this line
and their links to the god of the Sea, Poseidon.

The tale, which was of great length, began as follows: I have


before remarked, in speaking of the allotments of the gods,
that they distributed the whole earth into portions differing
in extent, and made themselves temples and sacrifices. And
Poseidon, receiving for his lot the island of Atlantis, begat
children by a mortal woman, and settled them in a part of
the island which I will proceed to describe
In this mountain there dwelt one of the earth-born
primeval men of that country, whose name was Evenor,
and he had a wife named Leucippe, and they had an only
daughter, who was named Cleito. The maiden was grow-
ing up to womanhood when her father and mother died.
Poseidon fell in love with her, and had intercourse with
her; and, breaking the ground, enclosed the hill in which
she dwelt all round, making alternate zones of sea and
land, larger and smaller, encircling one another; there were
two of land and three of water, which he turned as with a

zen garcia 254


lathe out of the center of the island, equidistant every way,
so that no man could get to the island, for ships and voy-
ages were not yet heard of. He himself, as he was a god,
found no difficulty in making special arrangements for
the center island, bringing two streams of water under the
earth, which he caused to ascend as springs, one of warm
water and the other of cold, and making every variety of
food to spring up abundantly in the earth. He also begat
and brought up five pairs of male children, dividing the
island of Atlantis into ten portions: he gave to the first-
born of the eldest pair his mothers dwelling and the sur-
rounding allotment, which was the largest and best, and
made him king over the rest; the others he made princes,
and gave them rule over many men and a large territory.
And he named them all: the eldest, who was king, he
named Atlas, and from him the whole island and the ocean
received the name of Atlantic. To his twin-brother, who
was born after him, and obtained as his lot the extremity
of the island toward the Pillars of Heracles, as far as the
country which is still called the region of Gades in that part
of the world, he gave the name which in the Hellenic lan-
guage is Eumelus, in the language of the country which is
named after him, Gadeirus. Of the second pair of twins, he
called one Ampheres and the other Evaemon. To the third
pair of twins he gave the name Mneseus to the elder, and
Autochthon to the one who followed him. Of the fourth
pair of twins he called the elder Elasippus and the younger
Mestor, And of the fifth pair be gave to the elder the name
of Azaes, and to the younger Diaprepes. All these and their
descendants were the inhabitants and rulers of divers islands
in the open sea; and also, as has been already said, they held
sway in the other direction over the country within the
Pillars as far as Egypt and Tyrrhenia (Italy).
Plato, Timeas

Poseidon is known to many cultures by many names. It is my hope


that in tying together the original story, one will realize that the

255 sons of god


mythologies all speak about this group of fallen angels and the hybrid
children they sired unnaturally into world. Poseidon is Oannes,
Kulkulkan, and Quetzlcoatl the hybrid fish god known worldwide
as the feathered serpent who brought wisdom and knowledge to
humankind. Uniting the world in trade, the Atlantean kings decided
on conquering and enslaving the world in what would be their
attempt to bring forth a new world order. Plato details this attempt
to unify the empires of the world through war.

Many great and wonderful deeds are recorded of your


State in our histories; but one of them exceeds all the rest
in greatness and valor; for these histories tell of a mighty
power which was aggressing wantonly against the whole of
Europe and Asia, and to which your city put an end. This
power came forth out of the Atlantic Ocean, for in those
days the Atlantic was navigable; and there was an island
situated in front of the straits which you call the Columns
of Heracles (the Strait of Gibraltar, known as the Pillars of
Hercules): the island was larger than Libya and Asia put
together, and was the way to other islands, and from the
islands you might pass through the whole of the opposite
continent which surrounded the true ocean; for this sea
which is within the Straits of Heracles is only a harbor,
having a narrow entrance, but that other is a real sea, and
the surrounding land may be most truly called a conti-
nent. Now, in the island of Atlantis there was a great and
wonderful empire, which had rule over the whole island
and several others, as well as over parts of the continent;
and, besides these, they subjected the parts of Libya within
the Columns of Heracles as far as Egypt, and of Europe
as far as Tyrrhenia (Italy). The vast power thus gathered
into one, endeavored to subdue at one blow our country
and yours, and the whole of the land which was within
the straits; and then, Solon, your country shone forth, in
the excellence of her virtue and strength, among all man-
kind; for she was the first in courage and military skill,

zen garcia 256


and was the leader of the Hellenes. And when the rest fell
off from her, being compelled to stand alone, after having
undergone the very extremity of danger, she defeated and
triumphed over the invaders, and preserved from slavery
those who were not yet subjected, and freely liberated all
the others who dwelt within the limits of Heracles. But
afterward there occurred violent earthquakes and floods,
and in a single day and night of rain all your warlike men
in a body sunk into the earth, and the island of Atlantis in
like manner disappeared, and was sunk beneath the sea.
And that is the reason why the sea in those parts is impass-
able and impenetrable, because there is such a quantity of
shallow mud in the way; and this was caused by the sub-
sidence of the island.
Plato, Critias

As we pick-up the ongoing tale of the Emerald Tablets, the story


will elucidate more of the details of that day and age and why it led
to the ultimate destruction of this fallen angel empire. The Tablets
also provide minute detail into the strange nature and abilities of
these beings when performing ritual magic to open star-gate por-
tals and give greater clarity into the supernatural capacities of the
Atlanteans because of their nephilim ties.

Long ages ago, the Suns of the Morning, descending,


found the world filled with night. There in that past time
began the struggle, the age old battle of darkness and
Light. Many in that time were so filled with darkness that
only feebly flamed the light from the night.
Some there were, masters of darkness, who sought to
fill all with their darkness; sought to draw others into their
night. Fiercely withstood they, the masters of brightness;
fiercely fought they from the darkness of night. Sought
they ever to tighten the fetters, the chains that bind man
to the darkness of night. Used they always the dark magic,

257 sons of god


brought into man by the power of darkness; magic that
enshrouded mans soul with darkness.
Banded together in as order, Brothers of Darkness,
they through the ages, antagonists they to the children of
men. Walked they always secret and hidden, found yet not
found by the children of men. Forever they walked and
worked in darkness, hiding from the light in the darkness
of night. Silently, secretly, use they their power, enslaving
and binding the souls of men.
Unseen they come and unseen they go. Man in his
ignorance calls Them from below.
Dark is the way the Dark Brothers travel, dark with a
darkness not of the night, traveling oer Earth they walk
through mans dreams. Power have they gained from the
darkness around them to call other dwellers from out of
their plane in ways that are dark and unseen by man. Into
mans mind-space reach the Dark Brothers. Around it,
they close the veil of their night. There through its life-
time that soul dwells in bondage, bound by the fetters of
the Veil of the night. Mighty are they in the forbidden
knowledge, forbidden because it is one with the night.
Hark ye, O man, and list to my warning: be ye free
from the bondage of night. Surrender not your soul to the
Brothers of Darkness. Keep thy face ever turned toward
the Light. Know ye not, O man, that your sorrow only has
come through the Veil of the night? Aye, man, heed ye
my warning: strive ever upward, turn your soul toward the
Light. For well know they that those who have traveled
far towards the Sun on their pathway of Light have great
and yet greater power to bind with darkness the children
of Light.
List ye, O man, to he who comes to you. But weigh in
the balance if his words be of Light. For many there are
who walk in Dark Brightness and yet are not the children
of Light. Easy it is to follow their pathway, easy to fol-
low the path that they lead. But yes, O man, heed ye my
warning: Light comes only to him who strives. Hard is the

zen garcia 258


pathway that leads to the Wisdom, hard is the pathway
that leads to the Light. Many shall ye find, the stones in
your pathway; many the mountains to climb toward the
Light. Yet know ye, O man, to him that oercometh, free
will he be of the pathway of Light. Follow ye not the Dark
Brothers ever. Always be ye a child of the Light. For know
ye, O man, in the end Light must conquer and darkness
and night be banished from Light.
Listen, O man, and heed ye this wisdom; even as dark-
ness, so is the Light.
When darkness is banished and all Veils are rendered,
out there shall flash from the darkness, the Light.
Even as exist among men the Dark Brothers, so there
exists the Brothers of Light. Antagonists they of the
Brothers of Darkness, seeking to free men from the night.
Powers have they, mighty and potent. Knowing the Law,
the planets obey. Work they ever in harmony and order,
freeing the man-soul from its bondage of night. Secret
and hidden, walk they also. Known not are they to the
children of men. Yet know that ever they walk with thee,
showing the Way to the children of men. Ever have They
fought the Dark Brothers, conquered and conquering time
without end. Yet always Light shall in the end be master,
driving away the darkness of night.
Aye, man, know ye this knowing: always beside thee
walk the Children of Light.
Masters they of the Sun power, ever unseen yet the
guardians of men. Open to all is their pathway, open to
he who will walk in the Light. Free are They of Dark
Amenti, free of the Halls where Life regins supreme. Suns
are they and Lords of the morning, Children of Light to
shine among men. Like man are they and yet are unlike.
Never divided were they in the past. One have they been in
Oneness eternal, throughout all space since the beginning
of time. Up did they come in Oneness with the All One,
up from the first-space, formed and unformed.
Emerald Tablet 6

259 sons of god


Tablet 6 describes how the Atlanteans themselves began to divide
into two main groups, the Sons of Darkness (or Belial) and the Sons
of Light (or the Law). Both groups organize themselves in efforts to
counter the others. The wars of the gods begins with further propa-
gation of evil on the part of the Sons of Darkness who later, as the
Sons of the Serpent, institute worship of the nachash. The Sons of
Light prepare for the soon coming destruction of Atlantis and judg-
ment from the Most High. The Atlanteans reach a point of perver-
sion whereby, as scripture alludes, they abandoned their first estate
breeding into the pre-adamic lines found on the Earth before the
creation of modern humanity.

Far in the past before Atlantis existed, men there were who
delved into darkness, using dark magic, calling up beings
from the great deep below us. Forth came they into this
cycle. Formless were they of another vibration, existing
unseen by the children of earth-men. Only through blood
could they have formed being. Only through man could
they live in the world.
In ages past were they conquered by the Masters, driven
below to the place whence they came. But some there were
who remained, hidden in spaces and planes unknown to
man. Lived they in Atlantis as shadows, but at times they
appeared among men. Aye, when the blood was offered,
forth came they to dwell among men.
In the form of man moved they amongst us, but only
to sight where they as are men. Serpent-headed when the
glamour was lifted but appearing to man as men among
men. Crept they into the Councils, taking forms that
were like unto men. Slaying by their arts the chiefs of the
kingdoms, taking their form and ruling oer man. Only by
magic could they be discovered. Only by sound could their
faces be seen. Sought they from the kingdom of shadows
to destroy man and rule in his place.
But, know ye, the Masters were mighty in magic, able
to lift the Veil from the face of the serpent, able to send

zen garcia 260


him back to his place. Came they to man and taught him
the secret, the Word that only a man can pronounce. Swift
then they lifted the Veil from the serpent and cast him
forth from place among men.
Yet, beware, the serpent still liveth in a place that is
open at times to the world. Unseen they walk among thee
in places where the rites have been said. Again as time
passes onward shall they take the semblance of men.
Called may they be by the master who knows the white
or the black, but only the white master may control and
bind them while in the flesh.
Emerald Tablet 8

Tablet 8 of the Emerald collection is, in my opinion, one of the


most important texts anywhere having to do with the true nature
of the nachash as intelligent reptilian beings. They, the tablets say,
were called out of the great deep by earth-men delving into darkness
seeking great power, and that these shadowy forces were conjured up
prior to even the existence of Atlantis. It is noted that they entered
our plane of existence and were able to somehow hold form only
when the blood was offered through ritual or victim sacrifice. Thus
the emphasis in pagan cultures on blood and the shedding of it.
They moved amongst us in the semblance of men, yet they were
not men, but inter-dimensional beings reptilian in nature, serpent-
headed and with unexplainable power to possess the identity of a
person anddisplacing the individualassume full authority and
free will over that being. Only by sight were they as men. Utilizing
chameleon like capacity, the nachash were able to cloak themselves
to our senses and perceptions, hiding their existence from humanity.
Like shadows they were able to enter into the ranks of man. Could
these reptilian beings, as hinted at by the Emerald Tablets, possess
the royal bloodlines of today? Could they still inhabit the forms of
rulers sitting on the thrones of the world? And if so, are they the

261 sons of god


Bilderberger elite inhabiting the councils of men, making decisions
for the masses of humanity based on what they see as best for us?
Not only does the most important story of humanitys loss of
immortality and fall from grace have something to do with our
ancestors interaction with the nachash, it seems all cultures of the
world cite ancient stories and mythologies that reveal our strange
displacement from paradise and collective enslavement by beings
that we are only now beginning to understand. Indeed all of the cul-
tures of the world outside of the Hebrew Israelites worshiped these
fallen angels as their collective pantheon of gods and goddesses.

I will go before thee, and make the crooked places straight:


I will break in pieces the gates of brass, and cut in sunder
the bars of iron: And I will give thee the treasures of dark-
ness, and hidden riches of secret places, that thou mayest
know that I, the Lord, which call thee by thy name, am
the God of Israel.
Isaiah 45:2-3

zen garcia 262


Salvation, Harvest,
and the Plan of
Redemption

Sophias desire to bring forth child without approval of consort


resulted in the separation of light from darkness and manifestation
of Yaldaboath as the first ruler of the lower dual natured material
world. This physical world would serve as a middle ground for the
experience of light and darkness and intermingling of good and
dreadful spirits. Sophia as veil represents the plane where light and
darkness overlap, intermingling individual fate and destiny for those
incarnating in flesh as part of the plan instituted by the Father to
reconcile Sophia. His Son, Yahushuah, would accept the trial of flesh
and also offer renewed opportunity to those angels that sat on the
fence during the Lucifer rebellion and subsequent wars in heaven.
Transformation into the physical would provide a proving ground
of sorts for the Ophanim angels (the one third angels that made no
choice during the First World Age to serve Him) to redeem their/
our loyalties. Judgment on this world would also serve as condem-
nation for the one third of the insurgent angels and fallen Watchers
that rebelled against His heavenly administration.
Some people equate Yaldoboath to being Yahweh, citing that the
God of the Old Testament was evil because of His instruction to the

263
Israelites to spare no man, woman, or child when sending Joshua
and the Hebrew peoples in to conquer the promised land of Canaan.
What most do not realize is that Yahweh did so only because the
land had prior been usurped by the children of Ham through the
bastard child Canaan and was inhabited by the children of the Anak
as a result of the Canaanites inter-breeding again with the children
of the fallen Watchers, post flood. The land of Canaan was filled
with giants who were the tribes of Anak or the Annunaki. That is
the specific reason why the Lord instructed them to act in such bru-
tal and decisive manner. Joshua and the invading Israelites would be
utilized as tools for the eradication of these evil beings much like the
flood was in purging the abomination that was the seed of Satan on
this planet then. The summation of scripture is nothing more than
the grand mythic tale of the birth, war, and battle for supremacy of
earth and creation between these two seed-lines as each struggle
against the other, as fortold in Genesis 3:15.
Yahweh, the unbegotten Father, is, was, and always will be the
Lord of Creation as He is the fullness that contains all things within
creation. He is the living and hidden God who sired, through His
Son the Word, all created things. He allowed Sophia to bring forth
Yaldaboath as part of a larger plan He had for the creation of the
physical universe and the carnal aspect of world and humanity.
The rulers thought that it was by their own power and will that
they were doing what they did, but the Holy Spirit in secret was
accomplishing everything through them as it wished (The Gospel
of Philip).
This world would verify to all why it is that creation needs a just
and benevolent Creator God with all power to rule through might,
justice, love, and law, for without such force or principle to main-
tain order, chaos, evil, death, violence, and destruction would lead all
to non-existence. This temporary world would prove to the angels
incarnating here as humanity just what kind of reality would be cre-
ated should we be given free will to determine our own collective

zen garcia 264


direction, fate, and destiny. The current state of the world is proof
enough that without the Father and Son we cannot rule over plan-
ets much less universes. We as collective are being shown just what
kind of a situation would be created and what kind of circumstances
would come into existence without His supreme law, order, and har-
mony lording over all things, for without Him all would be brought
to a violent end, which is exactly the lesson we are learning now.
Being the mother of matter, Sophia represents the veil where the
visible and invisible merge where the seen and unseen cross over in
dimensional reality that allows both the angels of the higher and the
lower orders to interplay with one another. She represents the middle
ground where both sets of angels can interact amongst one another
through the vehicle of the flesh body and incarnation into this world.
In this world, fate, destiny, and death would rule supreme over the
flesh for the time that we would dwell within it. Sophia is also cited in
the gnostic tradition as being the daughter of Barbelo and the femi-
nine aspect of the Holy Spirit, Holy Child, and sister of Christ.
By the will of the Father she desired to birth visibility into mani-
festation separate from the higher light realms; it was that act of sep-
aration that brought Yaldaboath, the Demiurge, into being, granting
him worlds to rule of his own. Just as the Lord knew Adam and Eve
would fall from grace, so did He know that Sophia would fall for
matter to be born and that Yaldaboath as Lucifer would assume the
adversarial role in waging the angel wars.
Like Adam and Eve, Sophia was ashamed of her actions, and
even though she was bidding the Fathers intent, she attempted to
cover up her deeds by casting Yaldaboath out of the heavens, con-
cealing him in cloud and establishing for him a throne in the mid-
dle of the still unfolding visible universe. Yaldabaoth, which means
child, passed through here and received his name after having
heard Sophia call to him once he came into being.Believing his
own lie and denying any authority above him, he considered himself
to be pre-existent and lord over the entirety of all he saw. What he

265 sons of god


did not know is that his reign and rule would be only temporary and
for a short duration.
Opening his eyes, he saw a vast quantity of matter without limit;
and he became arrogant, saying, It is I who am God, and there is
none other apart from me (The Hypostasis of the Archons).

Now the eternal realm (aeon) of truth has no shadow out-


side it, for the limitless light is everywhere within it. But
its exterior is shadow, which has been called by the name
darkness. From it, there appeared a force, presiding over
the darkness. And the forces that came into being sub-
sequent to them called the shadow the limitless chaos.
From it, every kind of divinity sprouted up [] together
with the entire place, so that also, shadow is posterior to
the first product. It was <in> the abyss that it (shadow)
appeared, deriving from the aforementioned Pistis. Then
shadow perceived there was something mightier than it,
and felt envy; and when it had become pregnant of its own
accord, suddenly it engendered jealousy.
Since that day, the principle of jealousy amongst all the
eternal realms and their worlds has been apparent. Now as
for that jealousy, it was found to be an abortion without
any spirit in it. Like a shadow, it came into existence in a
vast watery substance. Then the bile that had come into
being out of the shadow was thrown into a part of chaos.
Since that day, a watery substance has been apparent. And
what sank within it flowed away, being visible in chaos: as
with a woman giving birth to a childall her superfluities
flow out; just so, matter came into being out of shadow,
and was projected apart. And it did not depart from chaos;
rather, matter was in chaos, being in a part of it.
On the Origin of the World

Having only short time to rule, the Lord brought Niburu into this
solar system and by destroying Tiamat to create the new earth, estab-
lished the planets in their new orbits and configuration to begin the

zen garcia 266


next chapter of life focused on this planet, earth, which would be
under Satans rule. Time is established along with the constellations,
zodiac, sun, moon, and stars to mark the passing of the seasons cycles
and years. The story of what happened next in the lower realms
continues with the birth of seven androgynous beings, each repre-
sentative of a particular planet and association to specific days of the
week. With this solar system and time established, Yaldoboath cre-
ated his own army of demonic forces to appoint as authorities over
the lower visible firmament of this physical, fallen world.

These are the seven forces of the seven heavens of chaos.


And they were born androgynous, consistent with the
immortal pattern that existed before them, according to
the wish of Pistis: so that the likeness of what had existed
since the beginning might reign to the end. You will find
the effect of these names and the force of the male entities
in the Archangelic (Book) of the Prophet Moses, and the
names of the female entities in the first Book of Noraia.
Now the prime parent Yaldabaoth, since he possessed
great authorities, created heavens for each of his offspring
through verbal expressioncreated them beautiful, as
dwelling placesand in each heaven he created great
glories, seven times excellent. Thrones and mansions and
temples, and also chariots and virgin spirits up to an invis-
ible one and their glories, each one has these in his heaven;
mighty armies of gods and lords and angels and archan-
gelscountless myriadsso that they might serve. The
account of these matters you will find in a precise manner
in the first Account of Oraia.
On The Origin of the World

His thoughts became blind. And, having expelled his


powerthat is, the blasphemy he had spokenhe pur-
sued it down to chaos and the abyss, his mother, at the
instigation of Pistis Sophia. And she established each of
his offspring in conformity with its powerafter the pat-

267 sons of god


tern of the realms that are above, for by starting from the
invisible world the visible world was invented.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

The story of how we got to be here on this planet, and at this time,
is the most incredible tale that could ever be imagined, and is the
only interpretation I know that has the potential to answer all of
the larger questions as to what this life, the one before, and the one
hereafter is all about. In the next part of the book, I will discuss at
length our collective fall into flesh and the transformation of our
bodies from light to flesh on what was then the eighth day. Most
do not understand how the conversion of our spiritual light bodies
took place, why, or how it led to our entrapment and imprisonment
within the flesh and this world.
Whats more important is that most do not understand that
humanity was forgiven the fall and granted instruction for life in the
flesh so that we can later be redeemed. Know also that the Father,
Son, and Holy Spirit worked to elevate us into remembrance once
humanity awoke to the realization that we were bound in flesh on a
planet surrounded by devils and demons. Its a misnomer to believe
that we were just abandoned on this planet to live with Satan and
his minions and that the Holy Trinity never worked to awaken
Adam, Eve, and their descendants as to why they were fallen and
how to return to their first estate. Those that do not understand
this aspect of the elevation of humanity and how it also fits into the
fall are grasping only part of the larger story and, as such, are not
comprehending those scriptures that are tied to the second part of
this teaching (the elevation), which most believe contradict what is
revealed in traditional Old and New Testament scriptures as the fall.
My hope is that, with this clarity, the reader will be able to under-
stand the summation of all scripture everywhere in its totality.
After Sophia is established as the veil between the invisible and
visible worlds, or spirit and matter, Yaldaboaths kingdom is unfolded

zen garcia 268


as a counterfeit of the invisible and higher realms that existed prior
to the unfolding of the lower worlds. Yaldaboath, believing nothing
existed greater or prior to him, boasts of being the only god and
challenged any higher authority to reveal itself, which Yahushuah
then did by projecting an image of Himself as the first Adam and
immortal image of humanity, shining gloriously upon the waters of
the earth.
Embarrassed and frightened by the vision, Yaldaboath then
acknowledged authorities above him, but being enamored by the
beauty of the image he saw, was filled with a lust to capture its form.
He then considers with his authorities, tactics as to how they might
mold a counterfeit model of what they were witness to. Like a decoy,
their intent is to lure to this world the beautiful spirit they saw
reflected in the waters upon the earth.
Yaldaboath believes that if the spirit saw a molded form like itself
that it might then descend to this world, and with luck they then
might somehow capture it for their own benefit, enticing the beings
above to this fallen world. What he did not realize, however, is that
Yahushuah was guiding his plans for His own purpose and that He
would allow Satan and his authorities a part in molding of the phys-
ical flesh bodies because it would be through these molded forms
that judgment and salvation would come to being for all.
It would be through these bodies of flesh and modeled forms of
clay that the Second World Age would begin with the birth of Cain.
As the middle ground for flesh form, our bodies would contain both
good and bad angels, the Watcher and a holy one, and come about
as an agreement between the higher and lower angels.

And so he dwells either in this world or in the resurrection


or in the middle place. God forbid that I be found in there!
In this world, there is good and evil. Its good things are
not good, and its evil things not evil. But there is evil after
this world which is truly evilwhat is called the middle.
It is death. While we are in this world, it is fitting for us

269 sons of god


to acquire the resurrection, so that when we strip off the
flesh, we may be found in rest and not walk in the middle.
For many go astray on the way. For it is good to come forth
from the world before one has sinned.
The Gospel of Philip

Mary said to him: Holy Lord, where did your disciples


come from, and where are they going, and (what) should
they do here? The Perfect Savior said to them: I want you
to know that Sophia, the Mother of the Universe and
the consort, desired by herself to bring these to existence
without her male (consort). But by the will of the Father
of the Universe, that his unimaginable goodness might
be revealed, he created that curtain between the immor-
tals and those that came afterward, that the consequence
might follow [BG 118:] every aeon and chaosthat
the defect of the female might <appear>, and it might
come about that Error would contend with her. And these
became the curtain of spirit. From <the> aeons above
the emanations of Light, as I have said already, a drop
from Light and Spirit came down to the lower regions of
Almighty in chaos, that their molded forms might appear
from that drop, for it is a judgment on him, Arch-Begetter,
who is called Yaldabaoth.
That drop revealed their molded forms through the
breath, as a living soul. It was withered and it slumbered
in the ignorance of the soul. When it became hot from
the breath of the Great Light of the Male, and it took
thought, (then) names were received by all who are in the
world of chaos, and all things that are in it through that
Immortal One, when the breath blew into him. But when
this came about by the will of Mother Sophiaso that
Immortal Man might piece together the garments there
for a judgment on the robbers<he> then welcomed the
blowing of that breath; but since he was soul-like, he was
not able to take that power for himself until the number of

zen garcia 270


chaos should be complete, (that is,) when the time deter-
mined by the great angel is complete.
The Sophia of Jesus Christ

Yaldaboath, also called Ariael (Lion of God) by the gnostic texts in


Thomas Heywoods book Hierarchy of the Blessed Angels, is presented
as an angel with authority over the element of fire and airalso
called the prince who rules over the waters as Earths great Lord
we know this being to be the Sumerian Enkialso known as Lord
of the Waterswhich was a title associated with and attributed to
Oannes. Its my contention that all of these various and seemingly
disconnected embodiments all connect to Lucifer, the fallen cherub,
who after his fall became Satan, the adversary of Father Creator
and His only begotten Son, Yahushuah. Whereas some consider
Yaldaboath to be Yahweh, I equate the Gnostic Yaldaboath to the
Christian Satan and Islamic Iblis as all of these titles mean adver-
sary, enemy of God, or something of similar designation.
So eager are the fallen ones to mold a being that would persuade
the image of the immortal human to descend to this world that
they accept and heed instruction from Yahushuah and Sophia as
to how mold an appropriate receptacle for the incarnation of light
beings upon the Earth. They hesitate only after being warned that
the being that they were molding into form would later result in the
incarnation of the true man whom would later trample upon their
worlds and fake authority.
Neither do they realize that the Father would send His Son later
to incarnate into one of these modeled forms and deliver salvation to
all those who would later find themselves trapped in the lower world
in one of their agreed upon forms. These eighth day molded forms
would serve as the vehicle by which the lower authorities would
condemn themselves while Adam, Eve, and all their descendants
would be restored to everlasting life and salvation through the Son.
The Father knew that once Adam and Eve were created into flesh

271 sons of god


form, Yaldaboath and the other lower authorities would sin against
them, attempting to enslave them and their ancestors for the 7,000
years they would hold dominion of the earth.
Once the Father sent Christ to restore Pistis Sophia and her
light, the agreed upon plan was initiated, and the lower authori-
ties were shown how to mold flesh and blood human bodies. The
eighth-day molded-flesh form then came about as an agreement by
the Higher and Lower authorities as to what kind and type of body
the fallen sixth-day Adam and Eve would incarnate into once ban-
ished from their former bright-natured selves. Whereas they had
both once before been immortal angels, or sons of God, their new
bodies would be mortal forms subject to fate and death.
A prearranged plan came into effect regarding Eve, so that the
modelled forms of the authorities might become enclosures of the
light, whereupon it would condemn them through their modelled
forms (On the Origins of the World).

And having created [] everything, he organized accord-


ing to the model of the first aeons which had come into
being, so that he might create them like the indestructible
ones. Not because he had seen the indestructible ones, but
the power in him, which he had taken from his mother,
produced in him the likeness of the cosmos. And when he
saw the creation which surrounds him, and the multitude
of the angels around him which had come forth from him,
he said to them, I am a jealous God, and there is no other
God beside me. But by announcing this he indicated to
the angels who attended him that there exists another
God. For if there were no other one, of whom would he
be jealous?
The Testimony of Truth

Now when the heavens had consolidated themselves


along with their forces and all their administration, the
prime parent became insolent. And he was honored by

zen garcia 272


all the army of angels. And all the gods and their angels
gave blessing and honor to him. And for his part, he was
delighted and continually boasted, saying to them, I have
no need of anyone. He said, It is I who am God, and there
is no other one that exists apart from me. And when he
said this, he sinned against all the immortal beings who
give answer. And they laid it to his charge.
On the Origin of the World

And he said, If any other thing exists before me, let it


become visible to me! And immediately Sophia stretched
forth her finger and introduced light into matter; and she
pursued it down to the region of chaos. And she returned
up to her light; once again darkness [] matter.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

And when the light had mixed with the darkness, it caused
the darkness to shine. And when the darkness had mixed
with the light, it darkened the light and it became neither
light nor dark, but it became dim. Now the archon who is
weak has three names. The first name is Yaltabaoth, the
second is Saklas, and the third is Samael. And he is impi-
ous in his arrogance which is in him. For he said, I am
God and there is no other God beside me, for he is igno-
rant of his strength, the place from which he had come.
Apocryphon of John

And Zoe (Life), the daughter of Pistis Sophia, cried out


and said to him, You are mistaken, Sakla!for which the
alternative name is Yaltabaoth. She breathed into his face,
and her breath became a fiery angel for her; and that angel
bound Yaldabaoth and cast him down into Tartaros below
the abyss.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

Then when Pistis saw the impiety of the chief ruler, she
was filled with anger. She was invisible. She said, You are

273 sons of god


mistaken, Samael, (that is, blind god). There is an immor-
tal man of light who has been in existence before you, and
who will appear among your modelled forms; he will tram-
ple you to scorn, just as potters clay is pounded. And you
will descend to your mother, the abyss, along with those
that belong to you. For at the consummation of your (pl.)
works, the entire defect that has become visible out of the
truth will be abolished, and it will cease to be, and will be
like what has never been. Saying this, Pistis revealed her
likeness of her greatness in the waters. And so doing, she
withdrew up to her light.
On the Origin of the World

The Nag Hammadi codices are not understood well by those seek-
ing to parallel them with the fall of Genesis 3 in the Old Testament.
What people fail to realize is that these texts focus on humanitys
story post-Fall, after our ancestors banishment from paradise and
placement upon the lower earth. The codices discuss what happened
to Adam and Eve after having been transformed into their eighth
day bodies, which were flesh and blood physical vessels similar to the
bodies we inhabit today. This little known story is also important as
it details how we ended up being on the Earth and in these physical
incarnations. They also expound upon who the archons were, which
too verified Adam and Eve falling into a world already inhabited by
fallen angels. Because of the veil of forgetfulness, or cup of forget-
ting, the Lord would elevate their consciousness and heighten their
awareness through the fruit of the Good. It was after partaking of
this second fruit that they were able to comprehend where they had
fallen from, and where they had fallen to. Without the insight of the
codices it would be difficult to understand the fullness of the story
that encompasses our banishment to this prison planet. Like the
Books of Enoch, they shed light into the strange phenomena that
was the rebel angels and nephilim of Genesis 6. They bring insight
to a story that remains seemingly veiled even to this day.

zen garcia 274


And a voice came forth from the exalted aeon-heaven:
The Man exists and the son of Man. And the chief
archon, Yaltabaoth, heard (it) and thought that the voice
had come from his mother. And he did not know from
where it came. And he taught them, the holy and perfect
Mother-Father, the complete foreknowledge, the image of
the invisible one who is the Father of the all (and) through
whom everything came into being, the first Man. For he
revealed his likeness in a human form. And the whole aeon
of the chief archon trembled, and the foundations of the
abyss shook. And of the waters which are above matter, the
underside was illuminated by the appearance of his image
which had been revealed. And when all the authorities and
the chief archon looked, they saw the whole region of the
underside which was illuminated. And through the light
they saw the form of the image in the water.
Apocryphon of John

Declaring himself to be the only god, Yaldaboath blasphemes the


authorities of those in the imperishable realms. For this deed, Father
God would instruct Yahushuah as the light of lights to redeem Sophia
through a plan to allow for the next creation or third creation of
dust, flesh, and blood eighth-day Adam and Eve. Not believing that
there was in existence already an immortal man of light, Yaldaboath
arrogantly requests that those that are above him reveal themselves
as proof of a higher existence than he. The higher authorities then
made known their providence and shown down upon the waters
of the earthsome texts say an image of Christ Himself, others
that Christ filled Pistis Sophia with light reflecting her countenance
upon the waters of the lower visible Earth.
Regardless of which it was, the lower authorities became enamo-
red by the reflection of the divine upon the waters of the Earth.
Understanding that there are, were gods that supplanted them in
glory, the lower archons mocked Yaldaboath, realizing that the
vision they were witness to must have been revealed by gods greater

275 sons of god


than themselves. Having conceded this revelation, Yaldaboath then
declares that, Should you not want to see our work destroyed by
the God reflected in the waters, Come let us make man in our
image as he desired to capture the image he had seen by creating
a mate which might seduce it to the Earth. He, however, was only
following the Fathers will in creating what would be enclosures for
light beings subject to form. The dark archons are then instructed
on how to create a male form by which to attract the likeness of
the heavenly vision of Pistis Sophia, or Yahushuah, that they saw
reflected in the water. Yaldaboath would be tricked into surrender-
ing the life giving breath given him by Sophia to a mud form of the
fallen, earthly Adam.

As incorruptibility looked down into the region of the


waters, her image appeared in the waters; and the authori-
ties of the darkness became enamored of her. But they
could not lay hold of that image, which had appeared
to them in the waters, because of their weaknesssince
beings that merely possess a soul cannot lay hold of those
that possess a spiritfor they were from below, while it
was from above. This is the reason why incorruptibility
looked down into the region (etc.): so that, by the fathers
will, she might bring the entirety into union with the light.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

And having seen the likeness of Pistis in the waters, the


prime parent grieved very much, especially when he heard
her voice, like the first voice that had called to him out
of the waters. And when he knew that it was she who
had given a name to him, he sighed. He was ashamed on
account of his transgression. And when he had come to
know in truth that an immortal man of light had been
existing before him, he was greatly disturbed; for he had
previously said to all the gods and their angels, It is I who
am god. No other one exists apart from me. For he had
been afraid they might know that another had been in

zen garcia 276


existence before him, and might condemn him. But he,
being devoid of understanding, scoffed at the condemna-
tion and acted recklessly. He said, If anything has existed
before me, let it appear, so that we may see its light.
And immediately, behold! Light came out of the
eighth heaven above and passed through all of the heavens
of the earth. When the prime parent saw that the light
was beautiful as it radiated, he was amazed. And he was
greatly ashamed. As that light appeared, a human like-
ness appeared within it, very wonderful. And no one saw
it except for the prime parent and Pronoia, who was with
him. Yet its light appeared to all the forces of the heavens.
Because of this they were all troubled by it.
On the Origin of the World

The Lord answered me, Listen, John, beloved of my Father,


it is the ignorant who say, in their error, that my Father made
these bodies of mud. In reality He created all the virtues of
heaven through the Holy Spirit. But it is through their sin
that they found themselves with mortal bodies of mud and
were consequently turned over to death.
The Gospel of the Secret Supper

277 sons of god


The Molding of
Eighth-Day Dust
Adam and Eve

Creation unfolded in both a higher invisible and lower visible fir-


mament with light ruling from above and shadow ruling the lower
regions. Most people only understand one side of this story and so
fail to grasp the details behind the heavenly fall of Lucifer and his
demon angels and the fall of Adam and Eve, who also lose domin-
ion of paradise and their bright natures to find themselves clothed
in earthly flesh in the Garden of Eden on lower firmament of Earth
surrounded by devils they fear in loathing.
For 7,000 years Satan would be allowed to test the souls of all the
angels born into this world of flesh. Those that succeed in thwart-
ing off his evil suggestions, having proven their righteous love and
respect of the Lord, will inherit everlasting life at the second coming
of Yahushuah. Most do not understand that there were two sepa-
rate creations of Adam and Eve and that the fall condemned the
Ophanim angels who, like the Laodician church of this age, rode
the fence during the war in heaven to birth on the lower earth while
inhabiting the planet with the condemned rebel angels. On the
eighth day, Adam and Eve had their bodies transformed from one
of a bright nature in that they were clothed in light to one of a carnal

279
nature in that they would be transformed to earthly flesh form. The
flesh forms that Adam and Eve would assume after the fall would
come about as an agreement between the authorities of both the
higher and lower worlds.
Fate and death also come about as an agreement between the
forces of good and evil as each person incarnating into flesh would
be imbued with both a spiritual body that, fashioned by the higher
authorities, would direct the soul to redemption and a carnal spirit
that, fashioned by the lower authorities, would lead the soul to
destruction; both spirits are born with us as the conscience of human
beings. This planet and this life are the middle ground where we
determine our eternal fate by following the advice of either the angel
of righteousness or unrighteousness. Some would term this aspect of
self as conscience. One angel leads us on the narrow way, while the
other leads us down the broad path of destruction. Its important for
us to recognize that we have within us the capacity for both good
and evil. The duality that is the Tree of the Knowledge of Good
and Evil is the war in heaven that rages within each one of us even
to this day. It is our choices that determine whether we follow the
broad or narrow way that will present spirit and soul with chance for
redemption or destruction. Its the choices we make daily which will
determine whether we are deserving of salvation and eternal life or,
like the fallen ones, have justice served through condemnation.

I charged thee, saith he, in my first commandment to


guard faith and fear and temperance. Yes, Sir, say I. But
now, saith he, I wish to show thee their powers also, that
thou mayest understand what is the power and effect of
each one of them. For their effects are two fold. Now they
are prescribed alike to the righteous and the unrighteous.
Do thou therefore trust righteousness, but trust not
unrighteousness; for the way of righteousness is straight,
but the way of unrighteousness is crooked. But walk thou

zen garcia 280


in the straight [and level] path, and leave the crooked one
alone.
For the crooked way has no tracks, but only pathless-
ness and many stumbling stones, and is rough and thorny.
So it is therefore harmful to those who walk in it.
But those who walk in the straight way walk on the
level and without stumbling: for it is neither rough nor
thorny. Thou seest then that it is more expedient to walk
in this way.
I am pleased, Sir, say I, to walk in this way. Thou shalt
walk, he saith, yea, and whosoever shall turn unto the Lord
with his whole heart shall walk in it.
Hear now, saith he, concerning faith. There are two
angels with a man, one of righteousness and one of
wickedness.
How then, Sir, say I, shall I know their workings, see-
ing that both angels dwell with me?
Hear, saith he, and understand their workings. The
angel of righteousness is delicate and bashful and gentle
and tranquil. When then this one enters into thy heart,
forthwith he speaketh with thee of righteousness, of
purity, of holiness, and of contentment, of every righteous
deed and of every glorious virtue.
When all these things enter into thy heart, know that
the angel of righteousness is with thee. [These then are the
works of the angel of righteousness.] Trust him therefore
and his works.
Now see the works of the angel of wickedness also.
First of all, he is quick tempered and bitter and senseless,
and his works are evil, overthrowing the servants of God.
Whenever then he entereth into thy heart, know him by
his works.
How I shall discern him, Sir, I reply, I know not.
Listen, saith he. When a fit of angry temper or bitterness
comes upon thee, know that he is in thee. Then the desire
of much business and the costliness of many viands and
drinking bouts and of many drunken fits and of various

281 sons of god


luxuries which are unseemly, and the desire of women, and
avarice, and haughtiness and boastfulness, and whatsoever
things are akin and like to thesewhen then these things
enter into thy heart, know that the angel of wickedness is
with thee.
Do thou therefore, recognizing his works, stand aloof
from him, and trust him in nothing, for his works are evil
and inexpedient for the servants of God. Here then thou
hast the workings of both the angels. Understand them,
and trust the angel of righteousness.
But from the angel of wickedness stand aloof, for his
teaching is evil in every matter; for though one be a man of
faith, and the desire of this angel enter into his heart, that
man, or that woman, must commit some sin.
And if again a man or a woman be exceedingly wicked,
and the works of the angel of righteousness come into that
mans heart, he must of necessity do something good.
Thou seest then, saith he, that it is good to follow the
angel of righteousness, and to bid farewell to the angel of
wickedness.
This commandment declareth what concerneth faith,
that thou mayest trust the works of the angel of righteous-
ness, and doing them mayest live unto God. But believe
that the works of the angel of wickedness are difficult; so
by not doing them thou shalt live unto God.
Shepherd of Hermas, Mandate 6

The Shepherd of Hermas, for those that do not know, was considered
inspired and included in the original eighty-book canon of the early
church fathers. Though modern Christians have mostly forgotten
about it, it also has valuable information contained within its pas-
sages for seekers of truth. Many do not understand that there were
three creations of Adam and that our Lord Yahushuah as the Son
of God was the first Adam, Adam of light pre-existent in spiritual
perfection, and that it would be Him that would later incarnate as
God in flesh through the immaculate conception of the virgin Mary.

zen garcia 282


He would be the immortal man that the archons fear would destroy
their attempts and authority. He would be the long awaited and
prophesied Holy One of Israel.

There is therefore now no condemnation to them which


are in Christ Jesus, who walk not after the flesh, but after
the Spirit. For the law of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus
hath made me free from the law of sin and death.
For what the law could not do, in that it was weak
through the flesh, God sending his own Son in the like-
ness of sinful flesh, and for sin, condemned sin in the flesh:
That the righteousness of the law might be fulfilled in
us, who walk not after the flesh, but after the Spirit. For
they that are after the flesh do mind the things of the flesh;
but they that are after the Spirit the things of the Spirit.
For to be carnally minded is death; but to be spiritually
minded is life and peace.
Because the carnal mind is enmity against God: for it
is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed can be. So
then they that are in the flesh cannot please God. But ye
are not in the flesh, but in the Spirit, if so be that the Spirit
of God dwell in you. Now if any man have not the Spirit
of Christ, he is none of his.
And if Christ be in you, the body is dead because of
sin; but the Spirit is life because of righteousness. But if the
Spirit of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you,
he that raised up Christ from the dead shall also quicken
your mortal bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you.
Therefore, brethren, we are debtors, not to the flesh,
to live after the flesh. For if ye live after the flesh, ye shall
die: but if ye through the Spirit do mortify the deeds of
the body, ye shall live. For as many as are led by the Spirit
of God, they are the sons of God. For ye have not received
the spirit of bondage again to fear; but ye have received
the Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry, Abba, Father. The
Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the
children of God:

283 sons of god


And if children, then heirs; heirs of God, and joint-
heirs with Christ; if so be that we suffer with him, that we
may be also glorified together. For I reckon that the suf-
ferings of this present time are not worthy to be compared
with the glory which shall be revealed in us. For the ear-
nest expectation of the creature waiteth for the manifesta-
tion of the sons of God. For the creature was made subject
to vanity, not willingly, but by reason of him who hath
subjected the same in hope, Because the creature itself also
shall be delivered from the bondage of corruption into the
glorious liberty of the children of God.
For we know that the whole creation groaneth and tra-
vaileth in pain together until now. And not only they, but
ourselves also, which have the firstfruits of the Spirit, even
we ourselves groan within ourselves, waiting for the adop-
tion, to wit, the redemption of our body.
Romans 8:1-23

Satans temptation of sixth-day Adam and Eve resulted in human-


itys fall and entrapment in flesh once Eve was split off from Adam.
The third creation of Adam occurred on the eighth day in the wil-
derness of the lower Earth where Satan and his minions had already
been banished. Many confuse the Genesis story of Adams creation
and subsequent fall with the Gnostic story of Adams recreation and
elevation. And though the stories seem similar, yet contradictory,
they are two separate stories of events that take place in two sepa-
rate areas of heaven and on two different days of creation. The fall
occurred on the sixth day in Paradise, and the elevation took place
on the eighth day on what was the destroyed Tiamat, whichafter
relocation to a new orbitbecame the new earth, Ki, being ripe for
the next chapter of life in this solar system.
Its important to make the distinction between both events in
order to understand how these two pieces fit in with the totality of
the scriptural timeline. The fruit of the knowledge of good and evil
that lead to sixth day Adams loss of immortality is not the same

zen garcia 284


tree that leads to eighth day Adams heightened awareness in the
Gnostic story of the tree of good. It is difficult to grasp that indeed
there are two separate occasions documented of Adam and Eve eat-
ing from a tree. The first time they eat of the fruit of Tree of the
Knowledge of Good and Evil it led to their fall and condemnation
and required birth and death. The second time they eat of the fruit it
elevates their consciousness, awakening them to the realization as to
where they have fallen to and among whom. This second partaking
of the fruit of the Tree of Good leads to their awakening and realiza-
tion that they were naked to knowledge of Spirit and God and that
the gods around them were truly devils and demons.
There are two trees growing in Paradise. The one bears animals,
the other bears men. Adam ate from the tree which bore animals.
He became an animal and he brought forth animals. For this reason
the children of Adam worship animals (Gospel of Philip).
I know its difficult to understand this aspect of the creation story
and how it relates together to the fall in forming the bigger picture
of how we got to be here on this planet and in flesh form, yet the
knowledge I am about to reveal will, if one allows it, explain how all
of the stories fit together. This tale, once understood, also explains
how the modeling of that eighth day earthly form would eventually
lead to the condemnation of the fallen angels and the restoration of
humanity to everlasting life and forever salvation.
It was not until I had read and delved into the Nag Hammadi
codices that I myself began to discern what had happened to Adam
and Eve after they were banished from paradise and were already
fallen. I believe that this understanding is essential for making sense
of the total story and how the fall and elevation interrelate. Its my
belief that these codices shed light on new information, whichfor
the earnest truth seekerscan and does fill in gaps of knowledge
that would otherwise remain ambiguous.
Transformed into a state of flesh, Adam realizes that he has been
banished from paradise to find himself living in the same world as

285 sons of god


the fallen rebel angels. The interesting part of the next piece of the
puzzle concerns the appearance of Eve. Whereas the first account
of eating of the fruit led Eve to be seduced by Satan and resulted in
the loss of their bright natures or vestures of light, the second eating
of the fruit resulted in a spirit emissary being sent to Adam as Eve.
It was in the form of Eve that Pistis-Sophia made Adam aware of
where he had fallen from and how he got to be on the wilderness of
the Earth. The Gnostic texts provide different accounts as to who
the initial Eve was in assisting Adam; some say that it was Sophia,
others her daughter Zoe (life), others Christ Himself.
The texts also cite Yahushuah as being the voice of the instruc-
tor that tempted them to eat of the second tree, the Tree of the
Knowledge of Good and Evil and that this fruit, rather than con-
demn them to incarnation into the flesh, heightened their awareness
of who they were prior to the fall, and made them aware of where
they had come from, what this life would be about, and where to
from there.
Part of the plan in elevating humanity was to trick Yaldaboath
into giving the power he stole from Sophia initially to Adam.
Another thing that people do not understand about the elevation of
humanity is that when the Lord put the breath of life into Adam he
was awakened to his spiritual nature, which greatly surpassed that of
even the fallen angels. The Annunaki in the Sumerian texts cite the
incredible appearance of this new being upon the planet and how its
abilities surpass greatly even their own.

A wonder of wonders it is,


in the wilderness by themselves to have come about!
Isimud was summoned.
Among the bulrushes in reed baskets I them found!
he said.
Enlil the matter with graveness pondered,
with amazement his head he shook.
Indeed a wonder of wonders it is,

zen garcia 286


a new breed of Earthling on Earth has emerged,
A Civilized Man has the Earth itself brought forth,
Farming and shepherding, crafts and toolmaking he
can be taught!
So was Enlil to Enki saying.
Let us of the new breed to Anu word send!
Of the new breed word to Anu on Nibiru was beamed.
Let seeds that can be sown,
let ewes that sheep become, to Earth be sent!
So did Enki and Enlil to Anu the suggestion make.
By Civilized Man let Anunnaki and Earthlings become
satiated!
Anu the words heard, by the words he was amazed:
That by life essences one kind to another leads is not
unheard of!
to them words back he sent.
That on Earth a Civilized Man from the Adamu so
quickly appeared, that is unheard of!
Lost Book of Enki

One other thing of importance to mention here is that Adam and


Eve, once banished, were not just abandoned to fend for themselves
but were still cared for and nurtured by the angels of Yahushuah/
Yahweh who worked to open their eyes and mind to the power and
wisdom of the Holy Spirit. The Word and His angels have visited
with them continually in protecting them from the demon rulers
inhabiting and ruling over this realm.
Contrary to some beliefs, the fallen angelseven the Annunaki
cannot create or fashion life; they can only mold, manipulate, or
counterfeit from creation that which already exists. The things they
make are imitations, forgeries of what the Lord had previously fash-
ioned into world. Only the Holy Trinity has power to endow matter
with the spirit of life. The archons cannot imbue life or bring oth-
ers back from the dead. After eating from the tree, Adam awakens
to the realization that Eve is a heavenly angel sent to assist him in

287 sons of god


learning about the true Creator and the life he and his wife would
live out in the flesh while in this fallen world.

Then the authorities received the knowledge (gnosis)


necessary to create man. Sophia Zoeshe who is with
Sabaothhad anticipated them. And she laughed at their
decision. For they are blind: against their own interests
they ignorantly created him. And they do not realize what
they are about to do. The reason she anticipated them
and made her own man first, was in order that he might
instruct their modelled form how to despise them, and
thus to escape from them.
Now the production of the instructor came about as fol-
lows. When Sophia let fall a droplet of light, it flowed onto
the water, and immediately a human being appeared, being
androgynous. That droplet she molded first as a female
body. Afterwards, using the body she molded it in the like-
ness of the mother, which had appeared. And he finished it
in twelve months. An androgynous human being was pro-
duced, whom the Greeks call Hermaphrodites; and whose
mother the Hebrews call Eve of Life (Zoe), namely, the
female instructor of life.
On the Origin of the World

The Nag Hammadi texts clarify that the archons are told how to
fashion a body for Adam as a way of tricking Yaldaboath into imbu-
ing the model they create with the life force Sophia surrendered to
him when bringing him into being. To implement the plan of sal-
vation, a delegation of angels is sent to Yaldabaoth to instruct him
on how he might tempt and trap the vision he saw reflected in the
water, enslaving all those born into human form. Yaldaboath would
then transfer to the modeled form the light and power he stole from
Sophia, so that in giving it to Adam children of light would be born
of the flesh into this world until the restoration of Sophia, or matter,
through the resurrection to take place at the end of days.

zen garcia 288


Now these through the will <> The souls that were going
to enter the modelled forms of the authorities were mani-
fested to Sabaoth and his Christ. And regarding these, the
holy voice said, Multiply and improve! Be lord over all
creatures. And it is they who were taken captive, accord-
ing to their destinies, by the prime parent. And thus they
were shut into the prisons of the modelled forms until the
consummation of the age.On The Origin Of The world
And when the mother wanted to retrieve the power
which she had given to the chief archon, she petitioned the
Mother-Father of the All, who is most merciful. He sent,
by means of the holy decree, the five lights down upon the
place of the angels of the chief archon. They advised him
that they should bring forth the power of the mother.
And they said to Yaltabaoth, Blow into his face some-
thing of your spirit and his body will arise. And he blew
into his face the spirit which is the power of his mother;
he did not know (this), for he exists in ignorance. And
the power of the mother went out of Yaltabaoth into the
natural body, which they had fashioned after the image of
the one who exists from the beginning. The body moved
and gained strength, and it was luminous.
Apocryphon of John

And at that time, the prime parent then rendered an opin-


ion concerning man to those who were with him. Then
each of them cast his sperm into the midst of the navel of
the earth. Since that day, the seven rulers have fashioned
man with his body resembling their body, but his likeness
resembling the man that had appeared to them.
His modelling took place by parts, one at a time. And
their leader fashioned the brain and the nervous system.
Afterwards, he appeared as prior to him. He became a soul-
endowed man. And he was called Adam, that is, father,
according to the name of the one that existed before him.
On the Origin of the World

289 sons of god


Notice that the Adam created on the sixth day was made in the
image of Yahushuah, the first Adam that existed before him, and
that this sixth-day Adam was the image the archons saw reflected in
the waters that the eighth-day fallen dust Adam would be formed
and molded after. Its important to know that sixth-day Adam was
created in the heavens above the earth and that the angels of both
the higher and lower authorities were witness to his creation.
He was then taken up into paradise where he was protected from
the evil that was occurring on the earth. The Lord then brought
all creatures before him, and not finding another like him, decided
upon making for him a helpmate, whom weve come to know as Eve.
This Eve is the one that was seduced in Paradise by Lucifer who had
to sneak in the guise of a serpent, having lost his former beauty, and
it would be in this serpent form that he would tempt them to eat of
the forbidden fruit. After eating this fruit, they would then be ban-
ished to the earth where the Second World Age would begin with
the rape of Eve and birth of Cain.

While Adam was listening to the speech of his Lord to


him, and standing upon the place of Golgotha, all the
creatures being gathered together that they might hear the
conversation of God with him, lo! a cloud of light car-
ried him and went with him to Paradise and the choirs of
Angels sang before him, the cherubim among them bless-
ing and the seraphim crying Holy! until Adam came into
Paradise. He entered it at the third hour on Friday, and the
Lord, to Him be praise! gave him the commandment, and
warned him against disobedience to it
When he and she ate the deadly fruit they were bereft
of their glory, and their splendour was taken from them, and
they were stripped of the light with which they had been
clothed After the clothing of fig-leaves they put on cloth-
ing of skins, and that is the skin of which our bodies are made,
being of the family of man, and it is a clothing of pain.
KITAB AL-MAGALL

zen garcia 290


And in that moment the rest of the powers became jeal-
ous, because he had come into being through all of them
and they had given their power to the man, and his intel-
ligence was greater than that of those who had made him,
and greater than that of the chief archon. And when they
recognized that he was luminous, and that he could think
better than they, and that he was free from wickedness, they
took him and threw him into the lowest region of all matter.
Apocryphon of John

291 sons of god


Fallen Archons

Infused with yearning to enslave those who would be birthed upon


the Earth after the fall, the archons are led by Yahushuah to mold
forms, which would serve as receptacles for the ensnaring of angelic
souls. Having forgotten about their/our first estate, many would
accept the trial of flesh and assume form in a carnal nature. That is
the only reason that the powers agreed to assist in the molding of
the eighth-day bodies of flesh. The Second World Age began with
the rape of Eve, birth of Cain, and murder of Abel, the first casualty
in an ancient war that predates even Genesis 3:15 and the enmity
between the two seed lines. This war between the forces of good
and evil is one that precedes the creation of humanity on this planet
and originates with the rebellion in heaven that took place during
the First World Age. And though many of us do not have remem-
brance of these past spiritual lives, the Lord refers to us in His Word
when He mentions how He knew us before even the foundations of
this world. But we are bound to give thanks alway to God for you,
brethren beloved of the Lord, because God hath from the begin-
ning chosen you to salvation through sanctification of the Spirit and
belief of the truth.2 Thessalonica 2:13. I believe the whole reason
why the Lord told us to know self is for us to come to realization
that we are also fallen angels and that our actions in that prior spir-
itual life were such that incarnation in flesh would be required of
us. Perhaps we, like Esau, rebelled or rejected in someway the Lord
prior to birth in this world.

293
Whatever we did during the First World Age, it greatly influ-
enced our election into this life. The fact that we find ourselves in
the body is verification that we are not yet counted among the most
elect angels of the Lord. He has with this life given us and most of
the fallen ones renewed chance to redeem self as worthy of eternal
life and the salvation promised to those who honor the Father/Son.
I pray He find all of us worthy of a return to our first estate.
During the First World Age there were three groups of angels
heralded by three different archangels. Michael was leader of the
cherubim angels of the Lord, Gabriel the ophanim angels, and
Lucifer the seraphim angels. War ensued in heaven when Lucifer
and the Seraphim angels (one third) rebelled against Yahushuahs
dominion and assumption of authority during the separation of light
and darkness. Michael fought with and prevailed against Lucifer
whose name became Satan the adversary. He and his hosts were cast
out and banished to this lower earth on what Enoch said was the 2nd
day of creation.
After he tricked Adam and Evecausing their fall and later
incarnation into the fleshdeath, time, fate, and destiny would
all come into being as repercussion of the 2nd world age. In this
world age, the spirits of the 1st world age would be required to be
born of the flesh and live on a planet where they/we would learn
through the experience of good and evilto whom we wish to serve
in our loyalties, thoughts, actions, and behaviors. In Job we are given
the vision of a gathering of angels where Satan as accuser shows
up before this heavenly council to challenge the loyalty of those
who had incarnated into human form. In this occasion he is given
authority by the Lord to subject Job to trials and tribulations that
decimate his family wealth and status.

Now there was a day when the sons of God came to pre-
sent themselves before the Lord, and Satan came also
among them. And the Lord said unto Satan, Whence

zen garcia 294


comest thou? Then Satan answered the Lord, and said,
From going to and fro in the earth, and from walking up
and down in it.
Job 1 (kjv)

What we are not told in that particular story is that the Lord had
gone to Job beforehand and warned him about impending perse-
cution from Satan. If one studies a book called the Testament of
Job, one will see that Job was busy smashing down the altars and
groves that were established for the worship of Baal/Satan. This is
the reason why Satan was angry with Job and desired to persecute
him. Most believe that the Lord allowed Job to be oppressed and
persecuted on a whim and at the discretion of Satan, but that is not
the case. The Lord had forwarned Job and told him that should he
accept this task that He would restore his family wealth and status
more than twofold.

And the archangel, said to me: Thus speaketh the Lord: If


thou undertakest to destroy and takest away the image of
Satan, he will set himself with wrath to wage war against
thee, and he will display against thee all his malice. He will
bring upon thee many severe plagues, and take from thee
all that thou hast. He will take away thine children, and
will inflict many evils upon thee. Then thou must wrestle
like an athlete and resist pain, sure of thy reward, overcome
trials and afflictions.
But when thou endurest, I shall make thy name
renowned throughout all generations of the earth until to
the end of the world. And I shall restore thee to all that
thou hadst had, and the double part of what thou shalt
lose will be given to thee in order that thou mayest know
that God does not consider the person but giveth to each
who deserveth the good. And also to thee shall it be given,
and thou shalt put on a crown of amarant. And at the res-
urrection thou shalt awaken for eternal life. Then shalt
thou know that the Lord is just, and true and mighty.

295 sons of god


Whereupon, my children, I replied: I shall from love of
God endure until death all that will come upon me, and
I shall not shrink back. Then the angel put his seal upon
me and left me.
Testament of Job

Its my opinion that when death came into being, Satan challenged
not only the Lord, but also all of the Ophanim angels, to a testto
eat of the Tree of the Knowledge of Good and Evil. Flesh incarna-
tion is that test, and we are those angels trapped in fallen bodies, lost
in a dual nature world of good and evil. Here we are given free will to
determine our own fate and destiny as to whether we could remain
righteous and true to the Lord and His commandments. Satan even
challenged Yahushuah to enter flesh form and sabbatical upon fhe
earth in his dominion for the short time allotted him.
The Lord rose up to his challenge and told him that not only
would he subject the other classes of angels to life in the flesh but
that He also at some point would adorn the flesh and incarnate as
Savior Messiah, or Jesus Christ. He would, by example, confirm to
the rulers and people of this world that the Father and the Son are
the arbiters of eternal life and forever death. As part of this fallen
world, we are being taught collectively just why we need Their
Sovereign rule in our lives, for without Them we would create noth-
ing but chaos and evil. His life would become the example by which
the disciples and those that follow the law and commandments of
the Father can ascribe to, to hopefully have part in eternal life.

Moreover the Demiurge began to create a man according


to his image on the one hand and on the other according
to the likeness of those who exist from the first. It was this
sort of dwelling place that she used for the seeds, namely
[ separate ] God. When they [] in behalf of man,
since indeed the Devil is one of the divine beings. He
removed himself and seized the entire plaza of the gates

zen garcia 296


and he expelled his own root from that place in the body
and carcasses of flesh, for he is enveloped by the man of
God. And Adam sowed him.
The Valentinian Exposition

And he said to the authorities which attend him, Come,


let us create a man according to the image of God and
according to our likeness, that his image may become a
light for us. And they created by means of their respective
powers in correspondence with the characteristics which
were given. And each authority supplied a characteristic
in the form of the image which he had seen in its natural
(form). He created a being according to the likeness of the
first, perfect Man. And they said, Let us call him Adam,
that his name may become a power of light for us.
And the powers began: the first one, goodness, created a
bone-soul; and the second, foreknowledge, created a sinew-
soul; the third, divinity, created a flesh-soul; and the fourth,
the lordship, created a marrow-soul; the fifth, kingdom cre-
ated a blood-soul; the sixth, envy, created a skin-soul; the sev-
enth, understanding, created a hair-soul. And the multitude
of the angels attended him and they received from the powers
the seven substances of the natural (form) in order to create
the proportions of the limbs and the proportion of the rump
and the proper working together of each of the parts.
And the origin of the demons which are in the whole
body is determined to be four: heat, cold, wetness, and
dryness. And the mother of all of them is matter. And
he who reigns over the heat (is) Phloxopha; and he who
reigns over the cold is Oroorrothos; and he who reigns
over what is dry (is) Erimacho; and he who reigns over
the wetness (is) Athuro. And the mother of all of these,
Onorthochrasaei, stands in their midst, since she is illim-
itable, and she mixes with all of them. And she is truly
matter, for they are nourished by her.
The four chief demons are: Ephememphi, who belongs
to pleasure, Yoko, who belongs to desire, Nenentophni,

297 sons of god


who belongs to grief, Blaomen, who belongs to fear. And
the mother of them all is Aesthesis-Ouch-Epi-Ptoe. And
from the four demons passions came forth. And from grief
(came) envy, jealousy, distress, trouble, pain, callousness,
anxiety, mourning, etc. And from pleasure much wicked-
ness arises, and empty pride, and similar things. And from
desire (comes) anger, wrath, and bitterness, and bitter pas-
sion, and unsatedness, and similar things. And from fear
(comes) dread, fawning, agony, and shame. All of these
are like useful things as well as evil things. But the insight
into their true (character) is Anaro, who is the head of the
material soul, for it belongs with the seven senses, Ouch-
Epi-Ptoe. This is the number of the angels: together they
are 365. They all worked on it until, limb for limb, the nat-
ural and the material body was completed by them. Now
there are other ones in charge over the remaining passions
whom I did not mention to you. But if you wish to know
them, it is written in the book of Zoroaster. And all the
angels and demons worked until they had constructed the
natural body. And their product was completely inactive
and motionless for a long time.
Apocryphon of John

After the eighth-day, fallen-dust Adam was molded into a form that
could be utilized by the angels to incarnate into flesh his vessel was
abandoned by Yaldaboath and the archons as they were fearful of a
prophecy that warned of their condemnation and judgment to take
place through the model form they had created. This form lay on
the ground motionless for a period of time while the archons dis-
coursed among themselves as to what next to do. While in delibera-
tion, Yahushuah blew the breath of spirit into Adam, animating his
form with life.

According to a Coptic tradition preserved in the Discourse


on Abbatn, the Angel of Death, by Timothy, Archbishop
of Rakoti (Alexandria), the clay of which Adam was made

zen garcia 298


was brought by the angel Mrl from the Land of the
East. When God had made his body He left it lying for
forty days and forty nights without putting breath into
it. At the request of our Lord, Who promised to become
Adams advocate and to go down into the world, God
breathed into Adams nostrils the breath of life three times,
saying, Live! Live! Live! according to the type of My
Divinity. Thereupon Adam rose up, and worshipped the
Father, saying, My Lord and my God.
Cave of Treasures

Once Adam was animated with life, the archons would mold a
female form to trap Zoe whom would come later as Eve to instruct
Adam as to where he had fallen from and where he was now. Sophia-
Zoe took residence in the female form that the archons had molded
as Eve; she would be the one to awaken Adam to the reality of his
situation. Finding her counseling Adam, the archons ravage her in
foul ways attempting to soil the light within her so that the spirit
inhabiting Eve as Zoe could not ascend back unto heaven. Amused
by their futile attempt, Sophia-Zoe abandons Eve, leaving the mod-
eled form empty while being violated by the rulers of darkness. The
result of their actions led to the impregnation of the molded eighth-
day dust Eve who would afterward birth Cain, the first hybrid and
child of Satan upon the earth.
This story is echoed in the Kolbrin Bible, Book of Enoch, as well
as countless other texts (see my fourth book, Lucifer- Father of Cain).
Understanding that both the angels and the demons were involved
in the creation of the eighth-day, fallen, earthly flesh Adam assists
one to also explain why some believe that Satan, the ancient aliens,
the Annunaki, or other extra-terrestrial beings had a part to play in
the molding, but not creation, of humanity. Satan as the progenitor
of death is depicted as forms of darkness such as the grim reaper
because he is the lord of the dead, and Yahushuah our Lord is God
of the living. Only the Father/Son can create imbuing life to mat-

299 sons of god


ter, and the Elohim can only mold or form counterfeit replicas of
things the Holy Trinity has already brought into being. Only the
Holy Trinity can impart life and resurrect the dead.
Satan would like humanity to believe that he is our maker, but he
had no hand in forming the sixth-day, immortal, angelic, androgy-
nous Adam that fell from paradise. He only assisted in the creation
of the eighth-day, fallen-dust Adam, and even then it was only after
receiving instruction from the imperishable realms.

The rulers laid plans and said, Come, let us create a man
that will be soil from the earth. They modeled their crea-
ture as one wholly of the earth. Now the rulers [] body
[] they have [] female [] is [] with the face of a
beast. They had taken some soil from the earth and mod-
eled their man after their body and after the image of God
that had appeared to them in the waters.
They said, Come, let us lay hold of it by means of the
form that we have modeled, so that it may see its male
counterpart [], and we may seize it with the form that
we have modelednot understanding the force of God,
because of their powerlessness. And he breathed into his
face; and the man came to have a soul (and remained)
upon the ground many days. But they could not make him
arise because of their powerlessness. Like storm winds
they persisted (in blowing), that they might try to capture
that image, which had appeared to them in the waters.
And they did not know the identity of its power.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

And when they had finished Adam, he abandoned him as


an inanimate vessel, since he had taken form like an abor-
tion, in that no spirit was in him. Regarding this thing,
when the chief ruler remembered the saying of Pistis, he
was afraid lest the true man enter his modelled form and
become its lord. For this reason he left his modelled form
forty days without soul, and he withdrew and abandoned

zen garcia 300


it. Now on the fortieth day, Sophia Zoe sent her breath
into Adam, who had no soul. He began to move upon the
ground. And he could not stand up.
Then, when the seven rulers came, they saw him and
were greatly disturbed. They went up to him and seized
him. And he (viz., the chief ruler) said to the breath within
him, Who are you? And whence did you come hither? It
answered and said, I have come from the force of the man
for the destruction of your work. When they heard, they
glorified him, since he gave them respite from the fear and
the anxiety in which they found themselves. Then they
called that day Rest, in as much as they had rested from
toil. And when they saw that Adam could stand up, they
were glad, and they took him and put him in Paradise.
And they withdrew up to their heavens.
On the Origin of the World

It is important for the truth seeker to realize that this creation of


Adam, though taking part on the seventh daywhich is a day of
rest or the Sabbathis not inhabited by the fallen sixth-day Adam
until the eighth day. Though very subtle, this distinction is very
important in understanding how the story unfolded and that indeed
there was not only a fall from grace, but also an elevation from dark-
ness that took place once our ancestors were banished from Paradise.

But the blessed One, the Mother-Father, the beneficent


and merciful One, had mercy on the power of the mother
which had been brought forth out of the chief archon,
for they (the archons) might gain power over the natural
and perceptible body. And he sent, through his beneficent
Spirit and his great mercy, a helper to Adam, luminous
Epinoia which comes out of him, who is called Life. And
she assists the whole creature, by toiling with him and by
restoring him to his fullness and by teaching him about
the descent of his seed (and) by teaching him about the
way of ascent, (which is) the way he came down. And the

301 sons of god


luminous Epinoia was hidden in Adam, in order that the
archons might not know her, but that the Epinoia might
be a correction of the deficiency of the mother.
Apocryphon of John

After the day of rest, Sophia sent her daughter Zoe, being
called Eve, as an instructor, in order that she might make
Adam, who had no soul, arise, so that those whom he
should engender might become containers of light. When
Eve saw her male counterpart prostrate, she had pity upon
him, and she said, Adam! Become alive! Arise upon the
earth! Immediately her word became accomplished fact.
For Adam, having arisen, suddenly opened his eyes. When
he saw her, he said, You shall be called Mother of the
Living. For it is you who have given me life. Then the
authorities were informed that their modelled form was
alive and had arisen, and they were greatly troubled. They
sent seven archangels to see what had happened. They
came to Adam.
When they saw Eve talking to him, they said to one
another, What sort of thing is this luminous woman? For
she resembles that likeness which appeared to us in the
light. Now come, let us lay hold of her and cast her seed
into her, so that when she becomes soiled she may not be
able to ascend into her light. Rather, those whom she bears
will be under our charge. But let us not tell Adam, for he
is not one of us. Rather let us bring a deep sleep over him.
And let us instruct him in his sleep to the effect that she
came from his rib, in order that his wife may obey, and he
may be lord over her.
On the Origin of the World

Now all these things came to pass by the will of the father
of the entirety. Afterward, the spirit saw the soul-endowed
man upon the ground. And the spirit came forth from the
Adamantine Land; it descended and came to dwell within
him, and that man became a living soul. It called his name

zen garcia 302


Adam, since he was found moving upon the ground. A
voice came forth from incorruptibility for the assistance
of Adam; and the rulers gathered together all the animals
of the earth and all the birds of heaven and brought them
in to Adam to see what Adam would call them, that he
might give a name to each of the birds and all the beasts.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

I hope that you are beginning to understand the multiple creations


of Adam and that we are also fallen angels imprisoned within the
flesh for what is one lifetime in the immortal journey of soul. Unless
one understands how the fall affects us each individually, one will
not understand what Christ coming into the flesh truly means for
each of us. There are two seed lines on the planet. One will inherit
eternal life, the other condemned to death and nonexistence. One
will be gathered and laid up into the barn during harvest, one bun-
dled and consumed in the fire. One hears His voice, one doesnt.
One are His sheep, the other slaughterers of His herd.
Unless one has a foundation for understanding that there are
indeed two kinds of people on the planetone dedicated to evil and
the other dedicated to goodthe entirety of what has happened up
until now will not make sense. However, if one can open up to the
possibility of entertaining truth this way, everything will click into
place like pieces of a scattered puzzle.

The soul of Adam came into being by means of a breath.


The partner of his soul is the spirit. His mother is the thing
that was given to him. His soul was taken from him and
replaced by a spirit. When he was united (to the spirit),
he spoke words incomprehensible to the powers. They
envied him [] spiritual partner [] hidden [] oppor-
tunity [] for themselves alone [] bridal chamber, so
that [] Adam came into being from two virgins, from
the Spirit and from the virgin earth. Christ therefore, was
born from a virgin to rectify the Fall which occurred in the

303 sons of god


beginning There are two trees growing in Paradise. The
one bears animals, the other bears men. Adam ate from
the tree which bore animals. He became an animal and he
brought forth animals.
The Gospel of Phillip

The Chaldaeans mention Adam and say that this person


was the only one whom the earth produced. He lay with-
out breath and motionless and immovable like a statue.
He was an image of that human above, Adamas, and was
made by many powers. The great human from above,
from whom he and every family existing on earth and in
the heavens is derived, had to be completely submissive.
Therefore he was given a soul, so that through the soul the
enslaved creature of the great and most excellent and per-
fect human might suffer and be punished. They also ask
what the soul is and where it originates and what its nature
is, since it enters human beings and, by its movement,
enslaves and punishes the creature of the perfect being on
earth. They inquire not from the scriptures but from mys-
tical doctrines. If you say that everything originated from
one principal, you are wrong, but if you say it came from
three, you are right and can prove the whole matter. There
is one blessed nature of the blessed Adam from above, who
is Adamas. There is one mortal nature below.
The Naassene Sermon

Without knowledge of the multiple creations of Adam and how one


aspect of the story leads to the other, one would be hard pressed in
trying to comprehend how the Genesis creation story fits in with the
teachings of the apocryphal, pseudepigraphal, as well as newly dis-
covered gnostic interpretations on creation and humanitys begin-
nings. Only with the knowledge I present here can one unravel the
full picture of our total ancient history.

zen garcia 304


The rulers took counsel with one another and said, Come,
let us cause a deep sleep to fall upon Adam. And he
slept.Now the deep sleep that they caused to fall upon
him, and he slept is Ignorance.They opened his side like
a living woman. And they built up his side with some flesh
in place of her, and Adam came to be endowed only with
soul. And the spirit-endowed woman came to him and
spoke with him, saying, Arise, Adam. And when he saw
her, he said, It is you who have given me life; you will
be called mother of the living.For it is she who is my
mother. It is she who is the physician, and the woman, and
she who has given birth.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

The archons were only responsible in helping to form an appropri-


ate receptacle for the incarnation of spirit into flesh. They were part
of the process of bringing the eighth-day dust Adam into his fallen
state, but they do not have the power or the authority to imbue mat-
ter with life. Only the forces of the imperishable realms have the
power to imbue life, and that is only if it is the Father or Sons will.
Satan is and has been setting up the notion that he and his angels are
the true creators of modern humanity, but he was not.
He was, however, partially responsible for bringing free will to
humanity though he desires humanity to use that free will only in
condemning themselves to the same judgment that awaits him at
the end of his temporary rule.

And in that moment the rest of the powers became jeal-


ous, because he had come into being through all of them
and they had given their power to the man, and his intel-
ligence was greater than that of those who had made him,
and greater than that of the chief archon. And when they
recognized that he was luminous, and that he could think
better than they, and that he was free from wickedness, they
took him and threw him into the lowest region of all matter.

305 sons of god


Apocryphon of John

Since that time we learned about dead things, like men.


Then we recognized the God who had created us. For we
were not strangers to his powers. And we served him in
fear and slavery. And after these events we became dark-
ened in our hearts.
The Apocalypse of Adam

Then the Epinoia of the light hid herself in him (Adam).


And the chief archon wanted to bring her out of his rib.
But the Epinoia of the light cannot be grasped. Although
darkness pursued her, it did not catch her. And he brought
a part of his power out of him. And he made another crea-
ture, in the form of a woman, according to the likeness of
the Epinoia which had appeared to him. And he brought
the part which he had taken from the power of the man
into the female creature, and not as Moses said, his rib-
bone. And he (Adam) saw the woman beside him. And
in that moment the luminous Epinoia appeared, and she
lifted the veil which lay over his mind. And he became
sober from the drunkenness of darkness. And he recog-
nized his counter-image, and he said, This is indeed bone
of my bones and flesh of my flesh. Therefore the man will
leave his father and his mother, and he will cleave to his
wife, and they will both be one flesh. For they will send
him his consort, and he will leave his father and his mother
(3 lines unreadable)
Apocryphon of John

The eighth-day dust Adam and Eve were clothed in flesh, not light
like the sixth day Adam and Eve that were made in the image of the
Word. These beings were initially nothing more than mere empty
clay vessels devoid of life, consciousness, and movement that lay
abandoned upon the ground after their molding. Yaldaboaths intent
was to capture the image of the female sent to instruct Adam on
where he had fallen.

zen garcia 306


In the place where I will eat all things is the Tree of
Knowledge. That one killed Adam, but here the Tree of
Knowledge made men alive. The law was the tree. It has
power to give the knowledge of good and evil. It neither
removed him from evil, nor did it set him in the good, but
it created death for those who ate of it. For when he said,
Eat this, do not eat that, it became the beginning of death.
The Gospel of Phillip

307 sons of god


The Tree of Good
and Elevation of
Consciousness

Its important that one understands that the Lord knew Adam
and Eve would succumb to temptation by Satan. He knew also the
rebel angels would become unbridled in evil once Adam and Eve
were transformed into the flesh bodies that the archons were given
instructions on how to mold. Those modeled forms are the bodies
that their spirits would wear while living out lifetime on this planet.
It would be in these clothes of flesh that they would fulfill all of the
promises of Genesis 3 as prophesied by the Lord before he banished
them from upper Paradise and placed them on the lower earth.
Once Adam was transformed into his new fleshly body on the
eighth day, Zoe was sent to wake him up as to where he had fallen
from and how he got to be where he is now. She would take resi-
dence in the form of Eve while giving instruction to Adam. She
ascends back up into heaven, leaving Adam and Eve to their new
lives and fate when the archons rape the form of Eve, impregnating
her with Cain.
Another theme that presents itself in the study of scripture is the
veiled reference of angels having to drink from a cup of forgetfulness
before incarnation into the flesh as humans. This cup of forgetfulness

309
wipes remembrance clean so that, when born, the spirits enter flesh as
a clean slate. The accumulation of memory begins anew with entrance
into the womb and fusion with material form. Entering the flesh is
much like putting on a suit of armor for the spirit. Bodies are only a
temporary housing for what would be the duration of our existence in
the Second World Age and third-dimensional timeline. The flesh is our
second life and chance to redeem ourselves to the glory of what would
be the Third World Age, which is an eternal age that has no end.
If we can just aspire to the required righteousness necessary to
be counted among the Lords most elect angels, maybe He will then
count us worthy enough to have part in salvation and escape all those
things that are coming upon the earth, for what is coming are horrors
unimagined and not witnessed by humanity since the days of Noah.
Those abominations are tasked with decimating one third of
humanity then left on the planet, or those not written into the Book
of Life. Soon there will be a time when evil will be eradicated and
allowed existence no more. I pray the Father Son bless us all with
continuance and roles in their everlasting Kingdom.
For most it is difficult to consider life being about anything other
than what is physicalsucceeding in the material world, gaining a
good education, securing a good job, providing for children, uphold-
ing the name and legacy of family; these are the things that people
believe should drive the focus of human beings while living on the
planet. Its difficult for people to grasp the bigger picture of life and
being and to appreciate things on a more profound level, yet I believe
that, more and more, people are starting to realize that those things,
which they have worked their whole lives for, are falling short in
their ability to deliver on the promises of joy and contentment
hence the search for new answers.
Continuing with the story, when Yaldaboath and the archons come
upon the spirit of Zoe instructing Adam, she hides herself within his
body. Attempting to retrieve her spirit, Yaldaboath paralyzes Adam in
slumber, seeking to find where she had hidden herself within him, and

zen garcia 310


removing a rib fashioned it into another molded form, this time of a
woman. His hope was to capture Zoe in the form of Eve much as he
had Adam who was now trapped in the flesh of their male-modeled
form. If Zoe chose to inhabit its physicality, they thought they might
then have chance to seize and soil her with their lust so that, being
tainted, she would no longer have means to ascend again to the light.
This form becomes the eighth-day, fallen-dust Eve, the vessel by
which she and Adam would fulfill all of the prophecies as laid out by
the Lord in Genesis 3. On this planet and in their fallen forms they
would lose their bright natures, suffer the ravages of thirst, hunger,
childbirth, and as promised eventually succumb to death, which is
the Tree of the Knowledge of Good and Evil, the flesh form.
When the archons attempt the rape of Zoe, she laughs at their
futility, and hiding herself in the Tree of the Knowledge of Good,
watches as they violate in foul ways the modeled form of the eighth-
day, fallen-dust Eve. These rapes result in the birth of Cain and the
seed line from which the Pharisees were born. This line is the syna-
gogue of Satan, which says they are Jews, but are not.

And the archons took him and placed him in paradise.


And they said to him, Eat, that is at leisure, for their lux-
ury is bitter and their beauty is depraved. And their luxury
is deception and their trees are godlessness and their fruit
is deadly poison and their promise is death. And the tree
of their life they had placed in the midst of paradise.
And I shall teach you (pl.) what is the mystery of their
life, which is the plan which they made together, which is
the likeness of their spirit. The root of this (tree) is bitter
and its branches are death, its shadow is hate and decep-
tion is in its leaves, and its blossom is the ointment of evil,
and its fruit is death and desire is its seed, and it sprouts in
darkness. The dwelling place of those who taste from it is
Hades, and the darkness is their place of rest.
Apocryphon of John

311 sons of god


The Gospel of Phillip relates how the first tree leads to Adam, being
under the authority of death, and how the second would in fact
restore him to gnosis, wisdom, and knowledge that he is also a fallen
angel trapped in flesh form. Its the Holy Spirit who would tempt
them the second time to eat fruit from the Tree of Good, which
expanded their minds, making them recognize that they were now
naked to spiritual knowing and knowledge of their Maker.

But what they call the tree of knowledge of good and evil,
which is the Epinoia of the light, they stayed in front of it
in order that he (Adam) might not look up to his fullness
and recognize the nakedness of his shamefulness. But it
was I who brought about that they ate.
Apocryphon of John

The Apocryphon of John attributes Adams awakening to


Zoe the daughter of Sophia the daughter of Barbelo, who
are representatives of the Holy Virgin Spirit. Zoe teaches
Adam that the way of ascent is much the same as the way
of descent and that in order to prepare the way for the res-
toration of the deficiency of the aeons, that it would take
the Father sending the Son down to this planet and don-
ning the flesh Himself, would then restore those righteous
born of the flesh back to immortality and heavenly angelic
form. Sophias redemption would not be complete until
Yahushuah/Jesus Christ was resurrected to life. When He
returns the next time order will be restored and evil eradi-
cated from the lower visible realms.
And our sister Sophia (is) she who came down in inno-
cence in order to rectify her deficiency. Therefore she was
called Life, which is the mother of the living, by the fore-
knowledge of the sovereignty of heaven. And through her
they have tasted the perfect Knowledge. I appeared in the
form of an eagle on the tree of knowledge, which is the
Epinoia from the foreknowledge of the pure light, that I
might teach them and awaken them out of the depth of

zen garcia 312


sleep. For they were both in a fallen state, and they recog-
nized their nakedness. The Epinoia appeared to them as a
light; she awakened their thinking.
Apocryphon of John

They took Adam and put him in the garden, that he might
cultivate it and keep watch over it. And the rulers issued a
command to him, saying, From every tree in the garden
shall you eat; yet from the tree of recognizing good and
evil do not eat, nor touch it; for the day you eat from it,
with death you are going to die. They [] this. They do
not understand what they have said to him; rather, by the
fathers will, they said this in such a way that he might
(in fact) eat, and that Adam might <not> regard them as
would a man of an exclusively material nature.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

Then the seven of them together laid plans. They came up


to Adam and Eve timidly: they said to him, The fruit of
all the trees created for you in Paradise shall be eaten; but
as for the tree of knowledge, control yourselves and do not
eat from it. If you eat, you will die. Having imparted great
fear to them, they withdrew up to their authorities.
On the Origin of the World

Then the female spiritual principle came in the snake, the


instructor; and it taught them, saying, What did he say to
you? Was it, From every tree in the garden shall you eat;
yetfrom the tree of recognizing good and evil do not
eat? The carnal woman said, Not only did he say Do not
eat, but even Do not touch it; for the day you eat from it,
with death you are going to die.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

313 sons of god


The Tree of Good
And the snake, the instructor, said, With death you shall
not die; for it was out of jealousy that he said this to you.
Rather your eyes shall open and you shall come to be like
gods, recognizing evil and good. And the female instruct-
ing principle was taken away from the snake, and she left it
behind, merely a thing of the earth. And the carnal woman
took from the tree and ate; and she gave to her husband as
well as herself; and these beings that possessed only a soul,
ate. And their imperfection became apparent in their lack
of knowledge; and they recognized that they were naked of
the spiritual element, and took fig leaves and bound them
upon their loins.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

And to I said to the savior, Lord, was it not the serpent


that taught Adam to eat? The savior smiled and said, The
serpent taught them to eat from wickedness of begetting,
lust, (and) destruction, that he (Adam) might be useful
to him. And he (Adam) knew that he was disobedient to
him (the chief archon) due to light of the Epinoia which
is in him, which made him more correct in his thinking
than the chief archon. And (the latter) wanted to bring
about the power which he himself had given him. And he
brought a forgetfulness over Adam.
Apocryphon of John

The Instructor and the Fruit of Redemption


Then came the wisest of all creatures, who was called
Beast. And when he saw the likeness of their mother Eve
he said to her, What did God say to you? Was it Do not
eat from the tree of knowledge? She said, He said not only,
Do not eat from it, but, Do not touch it, lest you die. He
said to her, Do not be afraid. In death you shall not die.
For he knows that when you eat from it, your intellect will

zen garcia 314


become sober and you will come to be like gods, recogniz-
ing the difference that obtains between evil men and good
ones. Indeed, it was in jealousy that he said this to you, so
that you would not eat from it.
Now Eve had confidence in the words of the instruc-
tor. She gazed at the tree and saw that it was beautiful
and appetizing, and liked it; she took some of its fruit and
ate it; and she gave some also to her husband, and he too
ate it. Then their intellect became open. For when they
had eaten, the light of knowledge had shone upon them.
When they clothed themselves with shame, they knew
that they were naked of knowledge. When they became
sober, they saw that they were naked and became enamo-
red of one another. When they saw that the ones who had
modelled them had the form of beasts, they loathed them:
they were very aware.
On the Origin of the World

Having been elevated in consciousness, Adam and Eve realize that


they have now been transformed into flesh form, that they are in a
fallen state, and that they live in a world full of demonic beings and
dark authorities. They also recognize that they are different than the
fallen rebel angels and that these dark angels are not friendly to their
disposition. Having been instructed by Zoe as to where they had
fallen from, they realize that they must uphold all the ordinances
and laws of God if they are to be restored to eternal rest and salva-
tion at the end of days.

And when Yaltabaoth noticed that they withdrew from him,


he cursed his earth. He found the woman as she was prepar-
ing herself for her husband. He was lord over her, though he
did not know the mystery which had come to pass through
the holy decree. And they were afraid to blame him. And
he showed his angels his ignorance which is in him. And he
cast them out of paradise and he clothed them in gloomy
darkness. And the chief archon saw the virgin who stood by

315 sons of god


Adam, and that the luminous Epinoia of life had appeared
in her. And Yaltabaoth was full of ignorance. And when the
foreknowledge of the All noticed (it), she sent some and
they snatched life out of Eve.
Apocryphon of John

And the man came forth because of the shadow of the


light which is in him. And his thinking was superior to all
those who had made him. When they looked up, they saw
that his thinking was superior. And they took counsel with
the whole array of archons and angels. They took fire and
earth and water and mixed them together with the four
fiery winds. And they wrought them together and caused
a great disturbance. And they brought him (Adam) into
the shadow of death, in order that they might form (him)
again from earth and water and fire and the spirit which
originates in matter, which is the ignorance of darkness
and desire, and their counterfeit spirit. This is the tomb
of the newly-formed body with which the robbers had
clothed the man, the bond of forgetfulness; and he became
a mortal man. This is the first one who came down, and
the first separation. But the Epinoia of the light which was
in him, she is the one who was to awaken his thinking.
Apocryphon of John

Then the authorities came up to their Adam. And when


they saw his female counterpart speaking with him, they
became agitated with great agitation; and they became
enamored of her. They said to one another, Come, let us
sow our seed in her, and they pursued her. And she laughed
at them for their witlessness and their blindness; and in
their clutches she became a tree, and left before them her
shadowy reflection resembling herself; and they defiled it
foully.And they defiled the stamp of her voice, so that
by the form they had modeled, together with their (own)
image, they made themselves liable to condemnation.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

zen garcia 316


The Rape of Eve

Whats important to understand about the next part of the story is


that the prophecies stated in Genesis 3 would not be fulfilled until
Adam and Eve had been transformed into bodies of flesh. This
transformation did not take place until the eighth day. When Adam
and Eve are transformed into flesh/dust form, then the prophecies
as laid out in Genesis 3 are fulfilled one by one. Zoe, after instruct-
ing Adam, curses the archons for attempting to defile her in the
molded form they created to trap her. This rape resulted in the birth
of Cain, a fulfillment to Genesis 3:16, Unto the woman he said, I
will greatly multiply thy sorrow and thy conception; in sorrow thou
shalt bring forth children; and thy desire shall be to thy husband,
and he shall rule over thee (Genesis 3:15). The next passage is one
of those hidden gems within the Word that verifies the dual seed
line theory. For if there were not two blood lines and Satan did not
have his own seed on this planet, why enmity between the seed of
the serpent and seed of the woman? And I will put enmity between
thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed; it shall
bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel, was fulfilled with
the murder of Abel by his brother Cain, who as the firstborn son of
the devil became the first murderer, liar, deceiver, and progenitor of
evil on this planet.
Abel was the first casualty in the war between the bloodlines that
would span the duration of the 7,000 years that would be the Second
World Age. The Book of Enoch 22:7 states that, This is the spirit

317
which went forth from Abel, whom his brother Cain slew, and he
makes his suit against him till his seed is destroyed from the face of the
earth, and his seed is annihilated from amongst the seed of men. With
the birth of his brother Seth, Adam would begin to work the soil to
bring forth sustenance to feed his children a fulfillment of Genesis 3:17.

Because thou hast hearkened unto the voice of thy wife, and
hast eaten of the tree, of which I commanded thee, saying,
Thou shalt not eat of it: cursed is the ground for thy sake; in
sorrow shalt thou eat of it all the days of thy life; Thorns also
and thistles shall it bring forth to thee; and thou shalt eat the
herb of the field; In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread,
till thou return unto the ground; for out of it wast thou taken:
for dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return.
Genesis 3:17

Its important to understand that as the fall parallels the loss of


immortality, bright nature, and their clothing of light, so, too, does
the elevation of humanity parallel the restoration of intelligence,
awakening from darkness and their realization as to whence they
had fallen, being then trapped in the flesh in those forms which they
then would fulfill the prophecies that were told to them by the Lord
before He even banished them from Paradise.
It would be on this planet that the Second World Age began and
angels born into the bodies of humanity would die the death of mor-
tals. Lucifer is the prince that would be brought to the death men-
tioned in this passage, as well as Isaiah 14 and Ezekiel 28. Those two
passages also acknowledge how Lucifer, as Satan, now occupies the
form of a man, and how the Lord would force him to die the death
of a man in sight of kings and queens, the seed of his progeny.

God standeth in the congregation of the mighty; he judg-


eth among the gods. How long will ye judge unjustly, and
accept the persons of the wicked? Selah.

zen garcia 318


Defend the poor and fatherless: do justice to the
afflicted and needy. Deliver the poor and needy: rid them
out of the hand of the wicked. They know not, neither will
they understand; they walk on in darkness: all the founda-
tions of the earth are out of course. I have said, Ye are
gods; and all of you are children of the most High. But ye
shall die like men, and fall like one of the princes. Arise,
O God, judge the earth: for thou shalt inherit all nations.
Psalms 82, kjv

Jesus answered them, Is it not written in your law, I said,


Ye are gods? If he called them gods, unto whom the word
of God came, and the scripture cannot be broken; Say ye
of him, whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent into the
world, Thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of
God? If I do not the works of my Father, believe me not.
But if I do, though ye believe not me, believe the works:
that ye may know, and believe, that the Father is in me,
and I in him.
John 10:34-38

Then Eve, being a force, laughed at their decision. She


put mist into their eyes and secretly left her likeness with
Adam. She entered the tree of knowledge and remained
there. And they pursued her, and she revealed to them that
she had gone into the tree and become a tree. Then, enter-
ing a great state of fear, the blind creatures fled.
Afterward, when they had recovered from the daze,
they came to Adam; and seeing the likeness of this woman
with him, they were greatly disturbed, thinking it was she
that was the true Eve. And they acted rashly; they came
up to her and seized her and cast their seed upon her. They
did so wickedly, defiling not only in natural ways but also
in foul ways, defiling first the seal of her voicethat had
spoken with them, saying, What is it that exists before
you?intending to defile those who might say at the con-
summation (of the age) that they had been born of the true

319 sons of god


man through verbal expression. And they erred, not know-
ing that it was their own body that they had defiled: it was
the likeness that the authorities and their angels defiled in
every way.
On the Origin of the World

When we incarnate into this world we are stripped of our former


memories. As part of the great mystery and fabric of creation we
have rememberance that connects back to before the beginning, to
the foundations of the world and universe when Yahweh/Yahushuah
as part of self held all in being. We have been with the Father and
Son since before the institution of time. The reason our memories
are swept from us is so that we enter as a clean slate for renewed
chance at redemption and salvation. What we do in this lifetime
as angels, imprisoned within the flesh, determines our eternal fates
and what we do in the life hereafter. Those who are blessed to be
counted among the most elect will in fact judge angels and sit as
jurors in the councils of the Lord to convict and condemn the rebel
and fallen angels intended to be as gods themselves, forging a path
of self service and vain personal glory.
Do ye not know that the saints shall judge the world? and if the
world shall be judged by you, are ye unworthy to judge the smallest
matters? Know ye not that we shall judge angels? how much more
things that pertain to this life? 1 Corinthians 6:2-3, kjv.
There are only two paths we can follow in life, one as a foot-
washer in service to one another or as tyrant king in service to self.
One is the path of priesthood or the way of Abel, and the other
of kingship and divine right to ruleor the way of Cain. Those
who follow the Lord and adhere to His commandments become
the priests, prophets, and apostles that are stood up by the Lord
to serve the people. Those who are appointed by Satan to become
kings, queens, rulers, presidents, and prime ministers in service of a
New World Order are usually personas that serve his goal of world
domination. These individuals believe in their divine right to rule

zen garcia 320


over and decide the collective direction of the world. The fact that
many of them gather yearly at Bohemian Grove to worship a 40-
foot owl, in a mock ritual sacrifice of a human effigy, lets one know
that something weird is still ongoing.

He made a plan with his authorities, which are his powers,


and they committed together adultery with Sophia, and
bitter fate was begotten through them, which is the last
of the changeable bonds. And it is of a sort that is inter-
changeable. And it is harder and stronger than she with
whom the gods united, and the angels and the demons and
all the generations until this day. For from that fate came
forth every sin and injustice and blasphemy, and the chain
of forgetfulness and ignorance and every severe command,
and serious sins and great fears. And thus the whole crea-
tion was made blind, in order that they may not know
God, who is above all of them. And because of the chain
of forgetfulness, their sins were hidden. For they are bound
with measures and times and moments, since it (fate) is
lord over everything.
Next, let me say that once the rulers had seen him and
the female creature who was with him erring ignorantly
like beasts, they were very glad. When they learned that
the immortal man was not going to neglect them, rather
that they would even have to fear the female creature
that had turned into a tree, they were disturbed, and said,
Perhaps this is the true manthis being who has brought
a fog upon us and has taught us that she who was soiled is
like himand so we shall be conquered!
On the Origin of the World

From that day, the authorities knew that truly there was
something mightier than they: they recognized only that
their commandments had not been kept. Great jealousy
was brought into the world solely because of the immor-
tal man. Now when the rulers saw that their Adam had
entered into an alien state of knowledge, they desired

321 sons of god


to test him, and they gathered together all the domestic
animals and the wild beasts of the earth and the birds of
heaven and brought them to Adam to see what he would
call them.
When he saw them, he gave names to their creatures.
They became troubled because Adam had recovered from
all the trials. They assembled and laid plans, and they said,
Behold Adam! He has come to be like one of us, so that he
knows the difference between the light and the darkness.
Now perhaps he will be deceived, as in the case of the Tree
of Knowledge, and also will come to the Tree of Life and
eat from it, and become immortal, and become lord, and
despise us and disdain us and all our glory! Then he will
denounce us along with our universe. Come, let us expel
him from Paradise, down to the land from which he was
taken, so that henceforth he might not be able to recog-
nize anything better than we can. And so they expelled
Adam from Paradise, along with his wife. And this deed
that they had done was not enough for them. Rather, they
were afraid. They went in to the Tree of Life and sur-
rounded it with great fearful things, fiery living creatures
called Cheroubin, and they put a flaming sword in their
midst, fearfully twirling at all times, so that no earthly
being might ever enter that place.
On the Origin of the World

Having been granted authority over this fallen world for short time,
Yaldaboath decided the best plan of action for he and his demon
angels to assert their influence over the lives of those angels being
born into the flesh as humanity was to make life so difficult that
they/we wouldnt have time for seeking out the divine and coming
to understand the larger questions for our reasons for being here on
this planet and in this time.
The very reasons that this book was writtento wake you up to
who you are, how you got here, and what this life is all aboutthese
are the things that Satan does not want one to entertain and come to

zen garcia 322


know. He wants people to focus only on those things that serve his
purpose, vain distractions, and meaningless entertainmentthings
that do nothing as far as redeeming spirit for salvation of soul and
succeed only in keeping one lost and wayward. This is a world of the
blind leading the blind, of the lost leading the lost, and as such one
must be careful in what one believes and whom one chooses to fol-
low. Every decision we make is critical for determining individual,
eternal fates and destinies. Use time wisely as none are guaranteed
promise of future morrows, and truly any day could be our last.
Two other subtleties of variation to take notice of concerning the
fall and elevation are that on day six the Lord asked Adam and Eve,
Where art thou? not because He did not know where they were,
but because they were trying to hide from Him, and after finding
that they ate of the forbidden fruit the Lord does not curse Adam
and Eve, but instead the serpent, placing enmity between the two
seed lines and then the earth so that it would not grow freely in over-
abundant bounty. Never does he curse humanity even though they
would now be required to put forth effort in producing food from
the ground whereas in the Garden of Paradise fruit gave of itself
freely without necessary toil. When humanity returns to our first
estate we will no longer have to work the ground to bring forth food.
On day eight when Adam and Eve eat of the fruit, Yaldaboath
does not know where they are, verifying that he is limited in his cog-
nitive capabilities unlike the Father and Son, who are omnipotent
and all knowing. After finding that they ate of the fruit from the
Tree of Good, Yaldaboath curses the instructor that beckoned them
to eatthe earthand both Adam and Eve before exiling them
from his domain on the lower earth.

Then Eve saw that the appearance of the fig-tree was


beautiful, and that its smell was delightful; and she desired
to eat of it and to become a goddess. So she stretched out
her hand, and plucked, and ate, and gave also to her hus-
band, and he likewise did eat.

323 sons of god


And they were stripped of the fair glory and glori-
ous light of purity wherewith they were clothed, when
they saw not each others nakedness. And their eyes
were opened, and they saw their nakedness; and they
took leaves of the fig-tree, and covered their nakedness
for shame, and hid themselves beneath thick trees. Then
God called Adam and said to him, Where art thou,
Adam?not that He did not know where he was, but in
a chiding mannerand Adam said, Lord, I heard Thy
voice, and I hid myself because I am naked. God said,
Whence knowest thou that thou art naked? peradven-
ture hast thou transgressed the law and command which
I laid down for thee, and hast eaten of the tree of which
I commanded thee not to eat? Adam said, The woman
whom thou gavest to be with me, she gave to me, and I
did eat. And God questioned Eve in like manner; and
Eve said, The serpent beguiled me, and I did eat. And
God cursed the serpent, saying, Cursed art thou above
all beasts upon the earth. With the cursing of the ser-
pent, who was the tool of Satan, Satan, who had insti-
gated the serpent, was himself cursed; and immediately
his legs were destroyed, and he crawled upon his belly,
and instead of being an animal became a hissing reptile.
And God set enmity between the serpent and man,
saying, He shall smite the heel of man, but man shall crush
his head, and the food of the serpent shall be dust. God
said to Eve, In pain shalt thou bring forth children; and
to Adam He said, Cursed is the ground for thy sake, and
in toil and the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat thy bread;
for dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return. And
the earth, by reason of the curse which it had received,
straightway brought forth thorns and thistles. And God
drove them out from Paradise at the ninth hour of the
same day in which they were created.
The Book of the Bee 16

zen garcia 324


Not having the power of foresight and omniscient abilities to com-
prehend the consequences of his actions, Yaldaboath, upon learning
that Adam and Eve had in fact eaten of the Tree of Good and were
endowed with a greater capacity to understand the secrets of the
universe than even Satan and his fallen angels, was disgusted and
banished them from his area of control upon the earth.

Then the chief ruler came; and he said, Adam! Where are
you?for he did not understand what had happened. And
Adam said, I heard your voice and was afraid because I was
naked; and I hid. The ruler said, Why did you hide, unless
it is because you have eaten from the tree from which alone
I commanded you not to eat? And you have eaten! Adam
said, The woman that you gave me, she gave to me and I
ate. And the arrogant ruler cursed the woman.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

Then when the rulers knew that they had broken their
commandments, they entered Paradise and came to Adam
and Eve with earthquake and great threatening, to see the
effect of the aid. Then Adam and Eve trembled greatly
and hid under the trees in Paradise. Then the rulers did
not know where they were and said, Adam, where are you?
He said, I am here, for through fear of you I hid, being
ashamed. And they said to him ignorantly, Who told you
about the shame with which you clothed yourself?unless
you have eaten from that tree! He said, The woman whom
you gave meit is she that gave to me and I ate. Then
they said to the latter, What is this that you have done?
She answered and said, It is the instructor who urged me
on, and I ate.
On the Origin of the World

The woman said, It was the snake that led me astray and
I ate. They turned to the snake and cursed its shadowy
reflection, [] powerless, not comprehending that it was

325 sons of god


a form they themselves had modeled. From that day, the
snake came to be under the curse of the authorities; until
the all-powerful man was to come, that curse fell upon
the snake. They turned to their Adam and took him and
expelled him from the garden along with his wife; for they
have no blessing, since they too are beneath the curse.
Moreover, they threw mankind into great distraction and
into a life of toil, so that their mankind might be occupied
by worldly affairs, and might not have the opportunity of
being devoted to the Holy Spirit.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

Unless one understands and recognizes the subtle differences between


the fall of humanity and the elevation of humanity, one would not be
able to make sense of the sum total of not only the Gnostic teach-
ings but also in how they fit into and confirm the work of the Old
and New Testaments. Though the story of the fall and the elevation
of humanity seem similar, they are very different tales that allude to
differing time and place. We know that the Lord allows many major
events to repeat in cycles; events that occurred in the past are often
fated to transpire in the future. Just as Lucifer refused to bow before
the dominion of Yahushuah on the second day, so, too, did Lucifer
refuse to bow before the image of the Father and Sonor Adam,
made on the sixth day. As we had an incursion of fallen angels and
giants during the time of Jared and Enoch prior to the flood of Noah,
so shall the same be repeated here in the last days as we approach the
harvest and the separation of the wheat and the tares.
Understanding that indeed the Lord did have great part to play
in the elevation of humanity once we found ourselves stricken to the
planet in a fallen state will help one to unlock the teachings of the
Nag Hammadi codices, Dead Sea scrolls, as well as other apocryphal
and pseudipigraphal books, for without this insight, comprehension
of these teachings, in my opinion, is just not possible. And because
the stories were mixed, distorted, and changed during the evolu-

zen garcia 326


tion of humanity, the various characters that were the nephilim have
become confused, and the context of their ancient interdiction into
our ancestors lives is lost.

Then the rulers came up to the instructor. Their eyes


became misty because of him, and they could not do any-
thing to him. They cursed him, since they were powerless.
Afterwards, they came up to the woman and cursed her
and her offspring. After the woman, they cursed Adam,
and the land because of him, and the crops; and all things
they had created, they cursed. They have no blessing.
Good cannot result from evil.
On the Origin of the World

Notice that when Adam eats from the tree in Genesis it is Satan
as the serpent that is cursed for seducing Eve into deceiving Adam,
and that the Lordupon finding that Satan had deceived his high-
est creaturescursed him and stripped him of the beauty he once
had. Satan, when cast from the heavens, was transformed into a
dragon. Bereft of his glory, he and his seraphim angels are the rep-
tilian class of angels mentioned as having had part to play in this
planets ancient past.
There is even one very interesting Gnostic tale told by the Lord
that hint at His being the Instructor that came to elevate humanity
from their/our darkened state. This particular story is very profound
in that Yahushuah cited specifically that He came to this world in
previous embodimentprior to His incarnation and mission as
Yahweh manifest in fleshand that this previous embodiment was
the one that awakened Adam and Eve as to where they had fallen.
This story is further profound in that Yahushuah specifically cited a
previous embodiment prior to His immaculate conception as Christ.
In this text He seems to allude that He was the instructorthe
one that awakened Adam and Eve as to where they had fallen and
from whence.

327 sons of god


Now I have come the second time in the likeness of a
female, and have spoken with them. And I shall tell them
of the coming end of the Aeon and teach them of the
beginning of the Aeon to come, the one without change,
the one in which our appearance will be changed. We shall
be purified within those Aeons from which I revealed
myself in the thought of the likeness of my masculinity. I
settled among those who are worthy in the Thought of my
changeless Aeon.
For I shall tell you a mystery of this particular Aeon,
and tell you about the forces that are in it. The birth beck-
ons; hour begets hour, day begets day. The months made
known the month. Time has gone round succeeding time.
This particular Aeon was completed in this fashion, and
it was estimated, and it (was) short, for it was a finger
that released a finger, and a joint that was separated from
a joint. Then, when the great Authorities knew that the
time of fulfillment had appearedjust as in the pangs of
the parturient it (the time) has drawn near, so also had the
destruction approachedall together the elements trem-
bled, and the foundations of the underworld and the ceil-
ings of Chaos shook, and a great fire shone within their
midst, and the rocks and the earth were shaken like a reed
shaken by the wind. And the lots of Fate and those who
apportion the domiciles were greatly disturbed over a great
thunder. And the thrones of the Powers were disturbed,
since they were overturned, and their King was afraid. And
those who pursue Fate paid their allotment of visits to the
path, and they said to the Powers, What is this disturbance
and this shaking that has come upon us through a Voice
<belonging> to the exalted Speech? And our entire habita-
tion has been shaken, and the entire circuit of the path of
ascent has met with destruction, and the path upon which
we go, which takes us up to the Archgenitor of our birth,
has ceased to be established for us.
Then the Powers answered, saying, We too are at loss
about it, since we did not know what was responsible for it.

zen garcia 328


But arise, let us go up to the Archgenitor and ask him. And
the powers all gathered and went up to the Archgenitor.
They said to him, Where is your boasting in which you
boast? Did we not hear you say, I am God, and I am your
Father, and it is I who begot you. and there is none beside
me? Now behold, there has appeared a Voice belonging
to that invisible Speech of the Aeon which we know not.
And we ourselves did not recognize to whom we belong,
for that Voice which we listened to is foreign to us, and we
did not recognize it; we did not know whence it was.
It came and put fear in our midst and weakening in the
members of our arms. So now let us weep and mourn most
bitterly! As for the future, let us make our entire flight
before we are imprisoned perforce, and taken down to the
bosom of the underworld. For already the slackening of our
bondage has approached, and the times are cut short, and
the days have shortened, and our time has been fulfilled,
and the weeping of our destruction has approached us, so
that we may be taken to the place we recognize. For as for
our tree from which we grew, a fruit of ignorance is what
it has; and also its leaves, it is death that dwells in them,
and darkness dwells under the shadow of its boughs. And
it was in deceit and lust that we harvested it, this (tree)
through which ignorant Chaos became for us a dwelling
place. For behold, even he, the Archgenitor of our birth,
about whom we boast, even he did not know this Speech.
So now, O sons of the Thought, listen to me, to the
Speech of the Mother of your mercy, for you have become
worthy of the mystery hidden from the Aeons, so that you
might receive it. And the consummation of this particular
Aeon and of the evil life has approached, and there dawns the
beginning of the Aeon to come, which has no change forever.
Trimorphic Protennoia

The Second time I came in the Speech of my Voice. I gave


shape to those who took shape, until their consummation.
The Third time I revealed myself to them in their tents as

329 sons of god


Word, and I revealed myself in the likeness of their shape.
And I wore everyones garment, and I hid myself within
them, and they did not know the one who empowers me.
For I dwell within all the Sovereignties and Powers, and
within the angels, and in every movement that exists in all
matter. And I hid myself within them until I revealed myself
to my brethren. And none of them (the Powers) knew me,
although it is I who work in them. Rather, they thought that
the All was created by them, since they are ignorant, not
knowing their root, the place in which they grew.
Trimorphic Protennoia

During the elevation of eighth-day Adam and Eve it would be the


Christ as Holy Spirit that occupied the serpent as Instructor in form
to tempt Adam and Eve to eat of the Tree of Good. This fruit would
awaken them to the consequences of their fall from grace. Being a
representative of the higher authorities, the archons have no power
over the instructor and so curse the serpent (the form He was occu-
pying) even though it was a creature of their own making. In the
account of the fall, never did Yahweh/Yahushuah curse Adam or
Eve, but Satan and the land only. Yaldaboath, in the account of the
elevation, cursed the instructor, the serpent, Adam, Eve, and even
the earth when he discovered both had eaten from the tree of the
Knowledge of Good.

And he was continuously in paradise, and the devil under-


stood that I wanted to create another world, because
Adam was lord on earth, to rule and control it. The devil
is the evil spirit of the lower places, as a fugitive he made
Sotona from the heavens as his name was Satanail, thus
he became different from the angels, but his nature did
not change his intelligence as far as his understanding of
righteous and sinful things. And he understood his con-
demnation and the sin which he had sinned before, there-
fore he conceived thought against Adam, in such form he

zen garcia 330


entered and seduced Eva, but did not touch Adam. But I
cursed ignorance, but what I had blessed previously, those
I did not curse, I cursed not man, nor the earth, nor other
creatures, but mans evil fruit, and his works.
Book of the The Secrets of Enoch, 31

Behold, see how greatly I have loved thee, for though I


have cursed the earth for thy sake, yet have I withdrawn
thee from the operation of the curse. As for the serpent, I
have fettered his legs in his belly, and I have given him the
dust of the earth for food; and Eve have I bound under the
yoke of servitude.
The Cave of Treasures

Unless one understands that there literally is a seed line sired from
and dedicated to Satan, and that this seed line is wholly dedicated to
evil, one would not understand why the Lord attributes all sin to the
rebel and fallen angels who brought all destruction and abomina-
tion into this world. Knowledge that we ourselves are fallen angels,
imprisoned in flesh form, and that there are two individual blood
lines on this planet, one wholly dedicated to evil and the forma-
tion of a New World Order and the other to righteousness and the
rewards of salvation, can go a long way in deciphering where we are
and what this life is all about. These discernments will bring much
elucidation to the reading of scripture for those who are still hesi-
tant to begin a serious study of Yahwehs Word and help one make
sense of myriad teachings that otherwise would not make any kind
of literal sense.

They turned to their Adam and took him and expelled


him from the garden along with his wife; for they have no
blessing, since they too are beneath the curse. Moreover,
they threw mankind into great distraction and into a
life of toil, so that their mankind might be occupied by
worldly affairs, and might not have the opportunity of

331 sons of god


being devoted to the holy spirit. Now afterwards, she bore
Cain, their son; and Cain cultivated the land. Thereupon
he knew his wife; again becoming pregnant, she bore Abel;
and Abel was a herdsman of sheep. Now Cain brought in
from the crops of his field, but Abel brought in an offer-
ing (from) among his lambs. God looked upon the votive
offerings of Abel; but he did not accept the votive offer-
ings of Cain. And carnal Cain pursued Abel, his brother.
Hypostasis of the Archons

The next part of this story has to do with the fulfillment of those
prophecies as laid out in Genesis 3. The Lord told them what would
happen to them and their progeny once they ate from the forbid-
den fruit. Eating from the tree of the knowledge of good and evil
would cause them to lose their bright natures and immortal status as
angels, tending the garden of paradise in the third heaven where the
new Jerusalem awaits us even now.
Paradise is also the place that the Lord said He went to prepare
for us. Paradise is where we fell from and where we aspire to return
to once again to embrace our first estate as restored sons of God.

Let not your heart be troubled: ye believe in God, believe


also in me. In my Fathers house are many mansions: if it
were not so, I would have told you. I go to prepare a place
for you. And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come
again, and receive you unto myself; that where I am, there
ye may be also. And whither I go ye know, and the way ye
know. Thomas saith unto him, Lord, we know not whither
thou goest; and how can we know the way? Jesus saith
unto him, I am the way, the truth, and the life: no man
cometh unto the Father, but by me. If ye had known me, ye
should have known my Father also: and from henceforth
ye know him, and have seen him. Philip saith unto him,
Lord, shew us the Father, and it sufficeth us. Jesus saith
unto him, Have I been so long time with you, and yet hast
thou not known me, Philip? he that hath seen me hath

zen garcia 332


seen the Father; and how sayest thou then, Shew us the
Father? Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the
Father in me? the words that I speak unto you I speak not
of myself: but the Father that dwelleth in me, he doeth the
works. Believe me that I am in the Father, and the Father
in me: or else believe me for the very works sake. Verily,
verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me, the works
that I do shall he do also; and greater works than these
shall he do; because I go unto my Father. And whatsoever
ye shall ask in my name, that will I do, that the Father may
be glorified in the Son.
John 14:1-13 (kjv)

Once Adam and Eve are transformed into the flesh on the eighth
day, all of which was revealed in Genesis 3 would then transpire.
It would be in these modelled forms that Eve would be raped and
impregnated by the archons of the lower world. In one gnostic
account about the daughter of Eve called Norea, the archons tell her
that her mother had performed sexual favors for them and that she
also must adhere to their lust.

The rulers went to meet her, intending to lead her astray.


Their supreme chief said to her, Your mother Eve came to
us. But Norea turned to them and said to them, It is you
who are the rulers of the darkness; you are accursed. And
you did not know my mother; instead it was your female
counterpart that you knew. For I am not your descendant;
rather it is from the world above that I am come. The arro-
gant ruler turned, with all his might, and his countenance
came to be like (a) black []; he said to her presump-
tuously, You must render service to us, as did also your
mother Eve.
The Hypostasis of the Archons

Now that Adam and Eve were living in the Cave of treasures upon
the lower wilderness of the fallen Earth, Eve would as prophesied

333 sons of god


give birth to Cain who, as the firstborn son of the devil, would mur-
der his half-brother Abel who, as the firstborn son of Adam, became
the first casualty in the enmity cited in chapter three verse fifteen.
This enmity would play out between the two sides over the course of
the next 7,000 thousand years that the second world age would be in
existence. Not only would Adam have to work the ground to bring
forth sustenance to feed himself and Eve, he would now also have
to work to support the many children that would be born to them
now that they were in the flesh. The final prophecy to be fulfilled
would be there succumbing to death that the Lord told them would
be the consequence for eating from the Tree of the Knowledge of
Good and Evil.
This brings us to the part of the story that I published as my
fourth book, LuciferFather of Cain. In that book I expound upon
this topic with great detail, utilizing text from innumerable sources
available from all over the world. The fact that Cain was not a child
of Adam is only one of the many esoteric topics touched upon
within the contents of that book. Over 300 pages long, it summa-
rizes and ties together the loose ends of all topics, including mythol-
ogy, religion, and secret lore that have until now never been brought
together in such cohesive fashion.
Its my belief that the Lord allowed me to acquire a severe dis-
ability early in my life so that I would have the time and the focus
necessary to study in-depth the vast amounts of wisdom in texts
now available to us. Having read so much of them, He was able to
show me the underlying truth connecting them all together. Most
people do not have the time to study that wealth of information and
so I consider my quadriplegia a blessing in that it aligned me with
the intent of the Lords will for my life. Like most, I was lost and
waywardwandering the broad path of destruction. Thats the only
thing that makes this work unique in comparison to others.
I pray that the Lord bless you and your family in protection and
discernment so that you can utilize what time we do have left to pre-

zen garcia 334


pare yourselves, loved ones, extended family members, and friends
for those things that are coming quickly upon the earth. The Lord
has warned us about this particular period of time for thousands of
years through His many apostles and prophets that havefor mil-
lenniatold us of those things that we find now before us.

335 sons of god


W hat do the fallen angels have to do with the powers, principalities, ancient
aliens, and the strong delusion referenced by Paul in Thessalonians 2:10?
The lie that leads to damnation concerns the current perpetuation of the ancient
Ze n G a r ci a
alien myth, which claims that the Annunaki and Nephilim are the creators
and benefactors of humanity. Those whom accept this premise will unwittingly
volunteer their allegiance to the fallen angels. Unless one understands who the
fallen angels were, are, and how they were responsible for the introduction of evil
Sons of God
upon the world stage, one might also be caught up in the lie that causes the hearts

Sons of God
of men to fail, and the most elect to be deceived.
Have you ever heard or read about the Nephilim of Genesis 6? Did you
know that the Bible explains the mystery of all of the megalithic structures found
worldwide, when humanity supposedly possessed mere stone implements and
the most basic agriculture and agrarian techniques? Did you further know that
the breeding of angels with the daughters of humanity led to the unnatural birth
of this hybrid race of beingsresponsible for constructing the aforementioned
structuresand that their appetites were so voracious that they began to feed on
the flesh and blood of humanity? This sequence of events, in fact, inspired the
great flood.
In Sons of God, Garcia seeks to help readers recognize the realities of our
ancient past so that, in remembering the story, they can realize who they are and
why they are they here.

Zen Garcia obtained a Bachelor of Arts at Mercer University in 1999. He


has published numerous works, including Look Somewhere Different, When
Ze n Gar ci a
the Evening Dies..., A Different Way of Being, Lucifer Father of Cain, and
Awaken to the New World Order. He currently resides in Winder, Georgia,
and can be reached at www.fallenangels.tv and zengarcia2010@gmail.com.

Religion, Christian Theology

9 7 8 -1 -6 2 2 9 5 -0 1 1 -9 $23.99
PRINTED IN THE USA

Who We Are,Why We Are Here

You might also like

pFad - Phonifier reborn

Pfad - The Proxy pFad of © 2024 Garber Painting. All rights reserved.

Note: This service is not intended for secure transactions such as banking, social media, email, or purchasing. Use at your own risk. We assume no liability whatsoever for broken pages.


Alternative Proxies:

Alternative Proxy

pFad Proxy

pFad v3 Proxy

pFad v4 Proxy